Selected quad for the lemma: faith_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
faith_n church_n scripture_n tradition_n 15,184 5 9.5685 5 true
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A65714 Romish doctrines not from the beginning, or, A reply to what S.C. (or Serenus Cressy) a Roman Catholick hath returned to Dr. Pierces sermon preached before His Majesty at Whitehall, Feb. 1 1662 in vindication of our church against the novelties of Rome / by Daniel Whitbie ... Whitby, Daniel, 1638-1726. 1664 (1664) Wing W1736; ESTC R39058 335,424 421

There are 38 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

christian_n and_o a_o abbess_n over_o her_o nun_n but_o you_o argue_v thus_o our_o clergy_n promise_v canonical_a obedience_n to_o their_o bishop_n 83._o pag._n 83._o they_o do_v not_o so_o to_o the_o king_n ergo_fw-la they_o admit_v a_o jurisdiction_n in_o bishop_n of_o which_o the_o king_n be_v not_o the_o root_n answ_n we_o grant_v the_o whole_a who_o ever_o think_v that_o his_o majesty_n be_v the_o root_n of_o episcopal_a jurisdiction_n or_o that_o it_o be_v only_o jure_fw-la regio_fw-la 2._o the_o bishop_n that_o ordain_v we_o be_v authorise_v by_o his_o majesty_n to_o require_v this_o obedience_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v in_o a_o sense_n the_o root_n of_o it_o sect._n 7_o but_o you_o proceed_v to_o some_o question_n worthy_a to_o be_v state_v in_o a_o court_n sermon_n only_o the_o difficulty_n will_v be_v how_o to_o keep_v the_o courtier_n serious_a while_o they_o be_v examine_v 85._o mr._n c._n p._n 85._o thus_o than_o you_o argue_v be_v it_o dishonourable_a either_o to_o the_o king_n or_o kingdom_n that_o a_o pure_o spiritual_a authority_n shall_v be_v acknowledge_v in_o he_o to_o who_o 1._o this_o whole_a kingdom_n from_o its_o first_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n 2._o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n submit_v itself_o as_o to_o its_o supreme_a pastor_n answ_n yes_o because_o the_o person_n you_o speak_v of_o be_v some_o utopian_a pastor_n and_o both_o these_o surmise_n be_v evident_a untruth_n and_o be_v it_o honourable_a that_o the_o same_o authority_n shall_v be_v grant_v to_o more_o than_o twenty_o of_o his_o subject_n answ_n yes_o because_o they_o have_v a_o right_a to_o it_o majesty_n as_o if_o the_o bishop_n be_v indep_v on_o his_o majesty_n he_o no_o title_n but_o usurpation_n which_o it_o will_v be_v dishonourable_a to_o permit_v again_o say_v you_o be_v it_o unsafe_a that_o canonical_a obedience_n for_o christian_a unity_n sake_n shall_v be_v profess_v to_o one_o prelate_n to_o who_o we_o owe_v no_o obedience_n a_o thousand_o mile_n off_o answ_n yes_o because_o he_o be_v a_o thousand_o mile_n off_o and_o be_v there_o no_o danger_n in_o make_v the_o same_o profession_n to_o so_o many_o at_o home_n who_o be_v by_o his_o majesty_n over_o we_o to_o who_o canonical_a obedience_n to_o all_o their_o lawful_a command_n be_v due_a who_o be_v present_a with_o we_o answ_n no._n what_o follow_v be_v a_o surmise_n that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v the_o bishop_n may_v depress_v when_o their_o interest_n lead_v they_o to_o it_o the_o royal_a prerogative_n and_o i_o leave_v it_o to_o their_o answer_n chap._n ix_o of_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n mr._n c's_o state_n of_o the_o question_n sect._n 1_o we_o acknowledge_v no_o 〈◊〉_d write_v tradition_n as_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n sect._n 2._o why_o we_o p●efer_v the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n before_o other_o sect._n 3_o reason_n alone_o our_o guide_n sect._n 4._o scripture_n and_o the_o guidance_n of_o the_o spirit_n be_v not_o exclude_v by_o this_o guide_n ib._n the_o fallibility_n of_o it_o no_o prejudice_n against_o its_o guidance_n sect._n 5._o we_o own_v no_o judge_n of_o our_o faith_n but_o scripture_n sect._n 6._o mr._n c's_o calumny_n sect._n 7._o the_o romanist_n not_o guide_v by_o reason_n scripture_n or_o antiquity_n sect._n 8._o no_o necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n beside_o scripture_n sect._n 9_o mr._n c's_o argument_n for_o the_o church_n infallibility_n first_o from_o deut._n 17.8_o 9_o 10._o sect._n 10._o his_o second_o from_o christ_n promise_n of_o his_o presence_n with_o his_o disciple_n consider_v sect._n 11._o from_o christ_n promise_n of_o his_o presence_n with_o two_o or_o three_o sect._n 12._o of_o lead_v his_o church_n into_o all_o truth_n sect._n 13._o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o she_o sect._n 14._o from_o his_o command_n of_o obey_v the_o church_n sect._n 15_o from_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n sect._n 16._o mr._n c's_o abuse_n of_o mr._n chillingworth_n sect._n 17._o these_o promise_v not_o to_o be_v apply_v to_o particular_a church_n sect._n 18._o his_o argument_n from_o st._n gregory_n constant_n and_o the_o anathemas_n of_o council_n sect._n 9_o bishop_n bramhal_o and_o dr._n hammond_n plead_v not_o for_o such_o infallibility_n sect._n 20._o the_o doctor_n argument_n from_o the_o prevail_a of_o arrianism_n defend_v sect._n 21._o from_o the_o opinion_n of_o the_o millenaries_n sect._n 22._o from_o give_v the_o eucharist_n to_o infant_n sect._n 23._o in_o his_o nine_o chapter_n concern_v the_o church_n infallibility_n sect._n 1_o he_o distinguish_v between_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o guide_n of_o it_o and_o then_o tell_v we_o that_o to_o the_o presbyterian_o independent_o anabaptist_n quaker_n socinian_n etc._n etc._n the_o only_a rule_n be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n but_o both_o catholic_n and_o english_a protestant_n though_o they_o acknowledge_v divine_a revelation_n to_o be_v their_o only_a rule_n yet_o they_o admit_v certain_a universal_o receive_v tradition_n beside_o express_a scripture_n but_o as_o for_o the_o guide_n from_o which_o we_o be_v to_o learn_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o this_o rule_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o dr._n pierce_n 91._o pag._n 91._o and_o the_o generality_n of_o english_a protestant_n own_v the_o primitive_a church_n or_o four_o first_o general_n council_n but_o since_o their_o writing_n be_v as_o obnoxious_a to_o dispute_n as_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o a_o speak_a judge_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o all_o these_o be_v our_o ecclesiastical_a synod_n or_o bishop_n when_o synod_n be_v dissolve_v but_o principal_o those_o that_o be_v to_o make_v or_o determine_v the_o sense_n of_o act_n of_o parliament_n and_o upon_o those_o account_n against_o sectary_n they_o use_v the_o help_n of_o catholic_n weapon_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n but_o against_o catholic_n they_o turn_v fanatic_n and_o fly_v to_o a_o kind_n of_o private_a spirit_n or_o reason_n so_o that_o let_v they_o preach_v as_o much_o as_o they_o will_v the_o result_n of_o all_o the_o dispute_n between_o they_o and_o we_o must_v come_v to_o this_o whether_o their_o last_o speak_v judge_n in_o england_n or_o we_o in_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n deserve_v better_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o rely_v on_o but_o it_o be_v the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n alone_a that_o be_v guide_v both_o by_o reason_n god_n spirit_n the_o primitive_a church_n and_o the_o visible_a governor_n of_o the_o present_a church_n this_o be_v the_o sum_n of_o his_o seven_o first_o paragraph_n through_o which_o run_v such_o a_o palpable_a vein_n of_o dissimulation_n and_o falsehood_n that_o the_o most_o courteous_a charity_n can_v excuse_v it_o from_o be_v as_o wilful_a as_o gross_a for_o sect._n 2_o 1._o you_o tell_v we_o 2._o p._n 90._o s_o 2._o that_o though_o we_o acknowledge_v divine_a revelation_n to_o be_v our_o only_a rule_n yet_o we_o admit_v beside_o express_a scripture_n certain_a universal_a tradition_n for_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o what_o be_v these_o universal_o receive_v tradition_n that_o we_o admit_v to_o be_v rule_n of_o faith_n why_o do_v you_o forbear_v to_o name_v some_o of_o they_o and_o yet_o confident_o assert_v that_o we_o hold_v what_o we_o know_v we_o do_v not_o hold_v do_v not_o all_o english_a protestant_n prove_v against_o you_o that_o scripture_n be_v the_o sole_a and_o adequate_a rule_n of_o faith_n how_o then_o can_v they_o admit_v of_o any_o tradition_n as_o part_v of_o this_o rule_n and_o though_o we_o make_v use_v of_o universal_a tradition_n yet_o not_o as_o a_o rule_n but_o as_o a_o motive_n or_o argument_n for_o our_o faith_n as_o one_o argument_n that_o evidence_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v god_n word_n be_v the_o attestation_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o age_n which_o upon_o rational_a ground_n we_o embrace_v as_o creditable_a to_o confirm_v and_o convey_v this_o to_o we_o and_o this_o use_n we_o may_v make_v of_o the_o very_a testimony_n of_o the_o bitter_a enemy_n to_o christianity_n such_o as_o celsus_n julian_n porphyry_n etc._n etc._n but_o we_o say_v you_o receive_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n or_o four_o first_o general_a council_n sect._n 3_o who_o if_o we_o can_v believe_v you_o we_o constitue_a judge_n of_o the_o tradition_n receive_v by_o we_o answ_n we_o do_v i_o confess_v appeal_v to_o the_o four_o first_o general_a council_n not_o because_o we_o believe_v they_o infallible_a but_o because_o we_o conceive_v they_o to_o agree_v with_o scripture_n which_o be_v infallible_a so_o that_o we_o make_v they_o secondary_a not_o primary_n guide_v we_o resolve_v not_o our_o belief_n of_o their_o decree_n into_o their_o authority_n but_o into_o their_o agreement_n with_o scripture_n we_o do_v not_o say_v we_o must_v believe_v this_o or_o that_o because_o any_o one_o of_o the_o four_o first_o general_a council_n have_v define_v it_o but_o
will_v endanger_v our_o fall_n into_o the_o ditch_n mat._n 15.24_o seducer_n v._o 15._o of_o this_o chapter_n which_o be_v evidence_n sufficient_a that_o he_o never_o intend_v they_o shall_v be_v follow_v absolute_o but_o only_o when_o they_o follow_v the_o law_n of_o moses_n 2._o this_o infallibility_n can_v be_v prove_v from_o reason_n which_o to_o evince_v i_o will_v careful_o ponder_v what_o mr._n c._n have_v produce_v from_o this_o topic_a 1._o then_o to_o help_v he_o out_o a_o little_a i_o will_v premise_v that_o nature_n teach_v we_o that_o what_o be_v necessary_a to_o the_o christian_a faith_n for_o its_o preservation_n and_o to_o hinder_v the_o undermine_a of_o it_o aught_o to_o be_v practise_v 239._o mr._n c._n p._n 239._o but_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a say_v he_o for_o the_o church_n oft_o time_n to_o make_v her_o decision_n of_o point_n in_o controversy_n for_o otherwise_o the_o devil_n will_v have_v power_n to_o undermine_v a_o great_a part_n of_o our_o faith_n if_o permission_n be_v give_v free_o to_o maintain_v i_o suppose_v he_o mean_v to_o deny_v any_o thing_n that_o do_v not_o appear_v to_o any_o one_o express_o either_o in_o scripture_n or_o tradition_n answ_n we_o also_o grant_v a_o necessity_n or_o at_o least_o a_o convenience_n of_o a_o tribunal_n to_o decide_v controversy_n but_o how_o not_o by_o cause_v any_o person_n to_o believe_v what_o he_o do_v not_o antecedent_o to_o these_o decree_n upon_o the_o sole_a authority_n of_o the_o council_n but_o by_o silence_v our_o dispute_n and_o make_v we_o acquiesce_v in_o what_o be_v propound_v without_o any_o public_a opposition_n to_o it_o keep_v our_o opinion_n to_o ourselves_o and_o not_o trouble_v the_o church_n of_o god_n with_o they_o and_o therefore_o we_o be_v far_o enough_o from_o grant_v a_o permission_n to_o maintain_v open_o such_o thing_n as_o appear_v to_o any_o private_a judgement_n to_o be_v a_o truth_n as_o know_v this_o may_v breed_v disturbance_n but_o yet_o a_o liberty_n of_o use_v private_a discretion_n in_o approve_v or_o reject_v any_o thing_n as_o deliver_v or_o not_o in_o scripture_n we_o think_v aught_o to_o be_v allow_v for_o faith_n can_v be_v compel_v and_o by_o take_v away_o this_o liberty_n from_o man_n we_o shall_v force_v they_o to_o become_v hypocrite_n and_o to_o profess_v outward_o what_o inward_o they_o disbelieve_v but_o you_o further_o add_v 242._o p._n 242._o that_o upon_o such_o a_o decision_n it_o can_v be_v avoid_v but_o that_o a_o obligation_n of_o believe_v it_o will_v arise_v to_o christian_n or_o else_o to_o what_o end_n do_v the_o council_n state_n it_o answ_n we_o acknowledge_v that_o this_o be_v the_o end_n of_o her_o decree_n and_o that_o when_o ever_o her_o decision_n be_v divine_a truth_n we_o be_v under_o a_o obligation_n to_o believe_v they_o but_o to_o suppose_v they_o be_v always_o such_o be_v evident_o to_o beg_v the_o question_n and_o to_o assert_v this_o obligation_n when_o they_o be_v not_o such_o be_v to_o lay_v upon_o we_o a_o necessity_n to_o believe_v as_o many_o error_n as_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o a_o council_n to_o decide_v which_o the_o experience_n of_o the_o lateran_n 2._o nicene_n and_o trent_n council_n tell_v we_o may_v be_v very_o many_o and_o very_o dangerous_a 2._o this_o undoubted_o be_v the_o end_n of_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o arrian_n council_n yea_o of_o every_o council_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o will_v mr._n c._n assert_v that_o they_o unavoidable_o lay_v a_o obligation_n upon_o every_o member_n of_o their_o respective_a church_n to_o obey_v they_o well_o therefore_o baron_n will_v tell_v you_o contradicunt_fw-la objecto_fw-la fidei_fw-la c._n 17._o quae_fw-la quamvis_fw-la non_fw-la sit_fw-la exse_fw-la infallibilis_fw-la etc._n etc._n ad_fw-la vitandam_fw-la confusionem_fw-la &_o ecclesiarum_fw-la dilacerationem_fw-la etc._n etc._n qui_fw-la palam_fw-la contradicunt_fw-la that_o we_o confess_v the_o high_a ecclesiastical_a power_n to_o be_v a_o general_a council_n which_o albeit_o it_o be_v not_o of_o itself_o infallible_a and_o therefore_o can_v from_o its_o own_o authority_n oblige_v to_o give_v credit_n to_o its_o determination_n yet_o do_v it_o avail_v to_o that_o end_n to_o which_o it_o be_v institute_v i._n e._n for_o the_o avoid_v the_o confusion_n and_o rent_v of_o the_o church_n see_v such_o a_o council_n can_v excommunicate_v and_o subject_a to_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n those_o who_o open_o contradict_v she_o 2._o the_o authority_n of_o general_a council_n have_v a_o great_a weight_n and_o moment_n in_o the_o beget_n a_o persuasion_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o the_o doctrine_n define_v by_o it_o for_o such_o decree_n can_v rash_o be_v reject_v as_o be_v make_v by_o those_o observatione_fw-la timere_fw-la &_o non_fw-la adhibitâ_fw-la accuratâ_fw-la &_o gravi_fw-la observatione_fw-la who_o 1._o have_v great_a assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n 2._o great_a mean_n of_o find_v out_o the_o truth_n viz._n by_o prayer_n fast_n and_o disputation_n 3._o fidei_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la divinitus_fw-la datam_fw-la definiendi_fw-la controversias_fw-la fidei_fw-la better_a reason_n of_o discover_v what_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n yea_o 4._o say_v he_o a_o authority_n delegated_a from_o christ_n to_o decide_v controversy_n of_o faith_n your_o second_o argument_n be_v sect._n 8_o that_o god_n will_v not_o be_v want_v to_o his_o church_n to_o keep_v it_o in_o truth_n and_o unity_n 245._o p._n 245._o ergo_fw-la not_o only_o a_o general_a council_n but_o as_o general_a a_o one_o as_o can_v be_v have_v aught_o to_o have_v the_o force_n and_o obligation_n of_o a_o general_a or_o oecume●nical_a that_o be_v it_o ought_v to_o be_v infallible_a ans_fw-fr but_o pray_v you_o sir_n do_v you_o not_o here_o apparent_o beg_v the_o question_n for_o if_o any_o of_o we_o think_v that_o god_n will_v be_v want_v to_o preserve_v his_o church_n in_o truth_n and_o unity_n if_o general_a council_n be_v not_o infallible_a how_o soon_o will_v we_o embrace_v their_o infallibility_n but_o this_o be_v it_o that_o we_o constant_o deny_v maintain_v that_o albeit_o there_o be_v no_o such_o infallible_a judge_n yet_o have_v god_n sufficient_o consult_v the_o welfare_n of_o his_o church_n in_o that_o he_o have_v give_v we_o his_o word_n as_o a_o rule_n to_o walk_v by_o and_o his_o spirit_n who_o will_v infallible_o guide_v his_o child_n into_o all_o save_a truth_n and_o indeed_o the_o church_n who_o unity_n we_o profess_v be_v not_o a_o organical_a body_n make_v of_o several_a particular_a congregation_n or_o provincial_a church_n but_o only_o consist_v of_o the_o true_a and_o live_a member_n of_o christ_n body_n scatter_v through_o the_o world_n which_o be_v unite_v to_o he_o by_o faith_n and_o the_o mystical_a union_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o to_o one_o another_o by_o the_o bond_n of_o charity_n and_o be_v infallible_o guide_v by_o the_o spirit_n into_o a_o belief_n of_o all_o save_a truth_n 2._o it_o be_v evident_a hence_o that_o want_n of_o charity_n profaneness_n and_o hypocrisy_n be_v as_o great_a breach_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n as_o want_v of_o truth_n and_o yet_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o accuse_v god_n of_o be_v defective_a to_o his_o church_n because_o he_o have_v provide_v no_o other_o mean_n then_o his_o word_n spirit_n and_o minister_n against_o these_o thing_n and_o why_o then_o shall_v we_o esteem_v he_o so_o in_o not_o make_v further_o provision_n for_o the_o unity_n of_o his_o church_n 3._o as_o god_n have_v sufficient_o provide_v for_o kingdom_n and_o commonwealth_n by_o his_o ordinance_n of_o magistracy_n albeit_o they_o be_v not_o infallible_a in_o their_o law_n but_o may_v sometime_o enact_v such_o thing_n as_o tend_v to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o their_o subject_n even_o so_o he_o have_v sufficient_o provide_v for_o the_o external_a unity_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n he_o have_v place_v in_o they_o albeit_o they_o be_v not_o so_o but_o 4._o this_o be_v a_o undeniable_a evidence_n that_o god_n do_v not_o think_v these_o mean_n so_o necessary_a to_o unity_n as_o you_o pretend_v viz._n that_o he_o have_v not_o at_o all_o acquaint_v we_o with_o this_o mean_n of_o unity_n for_o it_o can_v be_v that_o the_o infinite_o wise_a god_n shall_v make_v that_o to_o be_v the_o only_a sufficient_a mean_n of_o unity_n about_o the_o nature_n and_o requisite_n of_o which_o there_o be_v so_o many_o hundred_o doubt_n that_o the_o wise_a man_n be_v not_o able_a to_o resolve_v they_o or_o return_v any_o thing_n satisfactory_a to_o they_o peruse_v but_o the_o question_n i_o have_v make_v touch_v this_o matter_n unless_o you_o be_v able_a to_o resolve_v they_o all_o with_o the_o great_a perspicuity_n and_o evidence_n this_o mean_n will_v evident_o be_v uneffectual_a to_o the_o end_n that_o god_n intend_v it_o for_o still_o it_o will_v remain_v in_o
he_o that_o not_o the_o assert_v of_o these_o opinion_n but_o the_o impose_v of_o they_o on_o we_o as_o condition_n of_o our_o communion_n with_o they_o the_o obtrude_a they_o into_o their_o liturgy_n and_o public_a office_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o our_o refuse_v communion_n with_o they_o and_o therefore_o that_o mr._n c._n will_v he_o draw_v the_o parallel_n must_v evidence_n that_o this_o be_v do_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n in_o the_o day_n of_o st._n gregory_n nor_o 4._o that_o it_o be_v not_o evident_a that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o harmony_n betwixt_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a as_o touch_v the_o celibacy_n of_o priest_n the_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n etc._n etc._n i_o say_v to_o omit_v all_o these_o and_o many_o other_o thing_n my_o last_o proposition_n shall_v be_v this_o that_o neither_o st._n sect._n 10_o gregory_n teach_v all_o these_o doctrine_n nor_o yet_o be_v they_o embrace_v by_o our_o church_n at_o that_o time_n proposition_n 9_o proposition_n for_o to_o begin_v with_o st._n gregory_n 1._o i_o have_v sufficient_o evince_v already_o that_o he_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n 2._o as_o for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n have_v he_o know_v this_o to_o have_v be_v the_o opinion_n of_o those_o day_n be_v it_o not_o a_o wonder_n that_o he_o shall_v never_o plead_v it_o against_o his_o opponent_n and_o adversary_n 3._o touch_v transubstantiation_n communion_n in_o one_o kind_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n what_o can_v you_o produce_v out_o of_o gregory_n for_o they_o and_o 1._o 137._o mr._n c._n p._n 137._o as_o for_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n you_o acknowledge_v that_o it_o be_v not_o practise_v for_o a_o thousand_o year_n and_o upward_a and_o where_o do_v st._n gregory_n tell_v we_o that_o it_o may_v be_v practise_v otherwise_o we_o have_v show_v you_o above_o that_o pope_n leo_n and_o gelasius_n think_v it_o no_o better_a than_o sacrilege_n to_o rob_v the_o people_n of_o the_o cup_n and_o therefore_o if_o you_o affirm_v gregory_n to_o have_v hold_v the_o contrary_a as_o it_o be_v gratis_o dictum_fw-la so_o will_v it_o be_v but_o a_o evidence_n of_o his_o depart_n from_o what_o be_v former_o maintain_v by_o his_o own_o church_n 2._o where_o do_v he_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v corporeal_o in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o that_o the_o substance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n remain_v not_o nay_o 9_o sacrificium_fw-la quod_fw-la passionem_fw-la silij_fw-la semper_fw-la imitatur_fw-la dial._n l._n 4._o c._n 58._o non_fw-fr inordinate_a agimus_fw-la si_fw-la ex_fw-la libris_fw-la licet_fw-la non_fw-la canonicis_fw-la sed_fw-la tamen_fw-la ad_fw-la edificationem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la editis_fw-la testimonia_fw-la proferamus_fw-la moral_a l._n 19_o c._n 16._o graeg_n in_o ezek._n l._n 1._o hom._n 9_o that_o it_o than_o obtain_v not_o in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n nor_o be_v esteem_v as_o a_o article_n of_o their_o faith_n be_v full_o evidence_v by_o bishop_n usher_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr christ_n eccles_n success_n l._n 1._o c._n 2._o and_o for_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n he_o tell_v we_o that_o christ_n be_v mystical_o there_o offer_v and_o that_o this_o be_v such_o a_o sacrifice_n which_o be_v a_o imitation_n of_o christ_n passion_n against_o your_o new_a canon_n of_o scripture_n which_o the_o dr._n quarrel_v with_o he_o be_v most_o evident_a in_o his_o moral_n where_o he_o say_v cite_v the_o 6_o of_o maccabee_n that_o it_o be_v not_o canonical_a against_o your_o tradition_n necessary_a to_o supply_v the_o defect_n of_o scripture_n he_o tell_v we_o whatsoever_o serve_v for_o edification_n and_o instruction_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o volume_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o again_o heretic_n do_v usual_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o their_o perverse_a opinion_n suggest_v such_o proof_n which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o scripture_n and_o what_o i_o pray_v you_o be_v your_o tradition_n yea_o all_o the_o doctrine_n you_o contend_v for_o in_o this_o book_n and_o whereas_o you_o sacrilegious_o rob_v the_o people_n of_o the_o use_n of_o scripture_n he_o on_o the_o contrary_n assure_v we_o med._n graeg_n l._n epist_n 40._o ad_fw-la theod._n med._n that_o it_o be_v a_o epistle_n send_v from_o god_n to_o his_o creature_n that_o be_v to_o priest_n and_o people_n and_o if_o thou_o receive_v a_o letter_n say_v he_o from_o a_o earthly_a king_n thou_o will_v never_o sleep_v nor_o rest_n till_o thou_o understand_v it_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n and_o god_n of_o man_n and_o angel_n have_v send_v his_o letter_n to_o thou_o for_o the_o good_a of_o thy_o soul_n and_o yet_o thou_o neglecte_v the_o read_n of_o they_o therefore_o i_o pray_v thou_o study_v they_o and_o daily_o meditate_v on_o the_o word_n of_o thy_o creator_n and_o learn_v the_o mind_n of_o god_n in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n you_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n must_v be_v observe_v devita_fw-la graeg_n l._n 9_o ep_v 9_o adorare_fw-la imagine_v omnibus_fw-la modis_fw-la devita_fw-la and_o acknowledge_v by_o all_o mean_n he_o contrariwise_o that_o by_o all_o mean_v it_o must_v be_v avoid_v and_o again_o in_o the_o same_o place_n it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o worship_v any_o thing_n that_o be_v make_v with_o hand_n because_o it_o be_v write_v thou_o shall_v worship_v the_o lord_n thy_o god_n and_o he_o only_o shall_v thou_o serve_v and_o again_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o serenus_n bishop_n of_o massilia_n i_o commend_v you_o that_o you_o have_v that_o zeal_n that_o nothing_o make_v with_o hand_n shall_v be_v worship_v but_o yet_o you_o shall_v not_o have_v break_v they_o etc._n etc._n but_o let_v they_o be_v proserve_v and_o forbid_v the_o people_n the_o worship_v of_o they_o that_o the_o ignorant_a may_v have_v whence_o to_o gather_v the_o knowledge_n of_o the_o history_n and_o yet_o not_o sin_n in_o worship_v the_o picture_n you_o assert_v a_o purgatory_n after_o this_o life_n he_o be_v think_v to_o contradict_v it_o by_o john_n bank_n who_o p._n 20._o prove_v the_o contrary_a 1._o 8._o moral_a l._n 8._o c._n 8._o from_o his_o moral_n where_o he_o say_v who_o mercy_n now_o deliver_v not_o him_z justice_n after_o the_o world_n alone_o imprison_v to_o which_o purpose_n be_v that_o of_o solomon_n that_o in_o whatsoever_o place_n the_o tree_n fall_v whether_o towards_o the_o south_n or_o towards_o the_o north_n there_o it_o shall_v be_v because_o at_o the_o time_n of_o a_o man_n death_n either_o the_o good_a spirit_n or_o the_o evil_a spirit_n shall_v receive_v the_o soul_n go_v from_o the_o body_n he_o shall_v hold_v it_o with_o he_o for_o ever_o without_o any_o charge_n that_o neither_o be_v exalt_v it_o can_v come_v down_o to_o punishment_n nor_o be_v drown_v in_o eternal_a punishment_n can_v thenceforth_o rise_v to_o any_o remedy_n of_o salvation_n if_o then_o after_o death_n there_o be_v no_o deliverance_n there_o be_v no_o change_n but_o as_o the_o angel_n either_o good_a or_o bad_a receive_v the_o soul_n out_o of_o the_o body_n so_o it_o continue_v for_o ever_o either_o exalt_v in_o joy_n or_o drown_v in_o punishment_n then_o there_o can_v be_v no_o purgatory_n than_o there_o can_v be_v nothing_o but_o heaven_n or_o hell_n where_o they_o that_o come_v shall_v abide_v for_o ever_o and_o in_o another_o place_n it_o be_v undecent_a to_o give_v ourselves_o to_o long_a affliction_n for_o they_o who_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v have_v come_v by_o death_n to_o true_a life_n this_o therefore_o see_v we_o know_v we_o be_v to_o have_v a_o care_n not_o to_o be_v afflict_v for_o the_o dead_a but_o to_o bestow_v our_o affliction_n on_o the_o live_n to_o who_o our_o piety_n or_o devotion_n may_v be_v profitable_a and_o our_o love_n yield_v fruit_n here_o be_v no_o place_n for_o purgatory_n see_v he_o teach_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o the_o faithful_a in_o death_n do_v attain_v to_o true_a life_n and_o that_o their_o passage_n from_o this_o world_n be_v to_o a_o better_a neither_o do_v he_o acknowledge_v any_o use_n of_o prayer_n mass_n trental_n or_o any_o other_o office_n or_o obsequy_n for_o the_o dead_a who_o say_v that_o our_o devotion_n and_o love_n yield_v no_o fruit_n or_o profit_n to_o they_o last_o as_o for_o marriage_n of_o priest_n i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o at_o first_o pope_n gregory_n do_v command_v they_o to_o live_v single_a but_o when_o he_o understand_v that_o they_o be_v give_v secret_o to_o fleshly_a pleasure_n and_o that_o hereupon_o many_o child_n be_v murder_v many_o infant_n head_n find_v in_o a_o fishpond_n he_o disannul_v that_o commandment_n 288._o p._n 288._o vid._n sup._n chap._n 17_o sect_n ult_n now_o against_o this_o evidence_n we_o have_v nothing_o but_o the_o confession_n of_o a_o osiander_n a_o h●mphry_n and_o a_o carrion_n who_o citation_n by_o the_o way_n be_v altogether_o impertinent_a with_o
romanist_n bring_v against_o the_o church_n of_o england_n though_o in_o themselves_o but_o probable_a be_v demonstration_n but_o the_o first_o be_v so_o ergo_fw-la which_o be_v no_o better_a than_o this_o if_o the_o moon_n be_v make_v of_o green_a cheese_n then_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n infallible_a but_o the_o moon_n etc._n etc._n again_o sect._n 2_o if_o we_o acknowledge_v it_o unlawful_a for_o particular_a church_n to_o dissent_v from_o the_o catholic_n without_o a_o evident_a demonstration_n that_o be_v such_o conviction_n as_o a_o matter_n of_o this_o nature_n can_v well_o bear_v then_o can_v nothing_o but_o evident_a demonstration_n against_o these_o doctrine_n hold_v by_o the_o four_o part_n of_o god_n church_n and_o deny_v by_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o be_v so_o much_o as_o probability_n but_o the_o first_o be_v so_o what_o credit_n your_o cause_n can_v receive_v from_o such_o argument_n as_o these_o i_o shall_v not_o envy_v you_o we_o be_v at_o last_o arrive_v at_o those_o condition_n which_o mr._n sect._n 3_o c._n require_v we_o to_o observe_v in_o our_o reply_n and_o the_o first_o be_v this_o to_o declare_v express_o that_o in_o all_o the_o point_v handle_v in_o this_o book_n we_o be_v demonstrative_o certain_a that_o they_o be_v error_n and_o novelty_n introduce_v since_o the_o four_o first_o general_a council_n for_o say_v he_o without_o this_o certainty_n according_a to_o the_o archbishop_n it_o be_v unlawful_a for_o protestant_n to_o question_n or_o censure_v such_o former_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n which_o reason_n will_v then_o be_v valid_a when_o it_o be_v prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n for_o of_o that_o only_a as_o we_o have_v evidence_v the_o archbishop_n speak_v &_o not_o till_o then_o 2._o it_o do_v not_o lie_v upon_o we_o to_o show_v that_o the_o doctrine_n impose_v upon_o we_o as_o article_n of_o faith_n be_v novelty_n and_o error_n but_o only_o to_o evince_v that_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o scripture_n or_o elsewhere_o whence_o it_o can_v be_v make_v evident_a that_o they_o be_v article_n of_o faith_n tradition_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n for_o this_o render_v it_o necessary_a for_o we_o to_o refuse_v those_o condition_n of_o communion_n which_o require_v we_o to_o believe_v they_o be_v such_o 3._o we_o be_v sufficient_o convince_v that_o your_o veneration_n of_o image_n be_v a_o novelty_n that_o your_o prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v so_o many_o untruth_n and_o that_o nothing_o in_o this_o or_o any_o other_o book_n say_v to_o the_o contrary_a be_v convictive_a 2._o sect._n 4_o he_o require_v we_o to_o demonstrate_v these_o main_a ground_n of_o our_o separation_n 1._o that_o the_o universal_a church_n represent_v in_o a_o general_n council_n may_v in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n not_o fundamental_a so_o mislead_v the_o church_n by_o error_n that_o a_o particular_a church_n etc._n etc._n discover_v such_o error_n may_v be_v oblige_v to_o separate_v external_o answ_n this_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o main_a ground_n of_o our_o separation_n that_o it_o be_v no_o ground_n at_o all_o neither_o do_v it_o concern_v we_o in_o the_o least_o to_o engage_v in_o this_o dispute_n see_v no_o lawful_a general_n council_n have_v determine_v one_o jota_n contrary_a to_o we_o that_o which_o he_o call_v the_o second_o ground_n of_o our_o separation_n have_v be_v consider_v already_o our_o three_o ground_n of_o separation_n must_v be_v this_o sect._n 5_o that_o a_o particular_a church_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o universal_a can_v judge_v what_o doctrine_n be_v fundamental_a what_o not_o in_o reference_n to_o all_o person_n state_n or_o community_n and_o then_o he_o require_v that_o a_o catalogue_n of_o such_o doctrine_n be_v give_v by_o the_o respondent_fw-la or_o else_o demonstrative_a reason_n be_v allege_v why_o such_o a_o one_o be_v not_o necessary_a answ_n this_o i_o bind_v myself_o to_o do_v when_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o we_o ever_o define_v any_o thing_n to_o be_v fundamental_a against_o the_o universal_a church_n or_o be_v concern_v to_o do_v so_o yea_o can_v it_o be_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n of_o god_n shall_v practice_v any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o we_o which_o yet_o be_v a_o contradiction_n see_v we_o be_v a_o part_n thereof_o yet_o must_v she_o necessary_o judge_v it_o a_o fundamental_a which_o be_v thus_o practise_v and_o as_o for_o his_o catalogue_n of_o fundamental_o 1._o mr._n chillingworth_n have_v demonstrate_v that_o such_o a_o catalogue_n be_v not_o necessary_a c._n 3._o sect_n 13._o 2._o i_o promise_v to_o give_v it_o he_o when_o he_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o evince_v it_o necessary_a or_o show_v demonstrative_a reason_n why_o we_o do_v not_o 3._o we_o urge_v he_o with_o as_o much_o vehemency_n to_o give_v in_o a_o list_n of_o all_o such_o tradition_n and_o definition_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n without_o which_o no_o man_n can_v tell_v whether_o or_o no_o his_o error_n be_v in_o fundamental_o and_o render_v he_o uncapable_a of_o salvation_n well_o sect._n 6_o but_o if_o we_o deny_v our_o external_a separation_n from_o the_o present_a universal_a church_n we_o be_v say_v he_o oblige_v to_o name_n what_o other_o visible_a member_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n we_o continue_v in_o communion_n with_o in_o who_o public_a service_n we_o will_v join_v or_o can_v be_v admit_v and_o to_o who_o synod_n we_o ever_o have_v or_o can_v repair_v answ_n this_o as_o also_o the_o question_n follow_v have_v be_v sufficient_o answer_v already_o under_o the_o eight_o proposition_n last_o say_v he_o since_o the_o english_a church_n by_o renounce_v not_o only_o several_a doctrine_n but_o several_a council_n acknowledge_v for_o general_n and_o actual_o submit_v to_o both_o by_o the_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n have_v thereby_o depart_v from_o both_o these_o we_o must_v find_v out_o some_o other_o pretend_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n divide_v from_o both_o these_o that_o be_v some_o that_o be_v not_o manifest_o heretical_a with_o who_o the_o english_a church_n communicate_v answ_n every_o line_n be_v a_o misadventure_n for_o 1._o this_o passage_n suppose_v that_o we_o can_v be_v in_o the_o communion_n with_o those_o from_o who_o we_o differ_v in_o any_o doctrine_n so_o that_o those_o who_o hold_v the_o pope_n above_o a_o general_n council_n the_o adoration_n of_o latria_n due_a to_o some_o image_n the_o celibacy_n of_o priest_n to_o be_v jure_fw-la divino_fw-la meritum_fw-la de_fw-la condigno_fw-la and_o the_o like_a can_v be_v in_o communion_n with_o any_o other_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n which_o all_o hold_v the_o contrary_n 2._o that_o we_o can_v be_v in_o communion_n with_o other_o church_n unless_o we_o receive_v the_o same_o council_n for_o general_n which_o they_o do_v 3._o that_o the_o whole_a eastern_a church_n embrace_v any_o doctrine_n or_o council_n as_o general_n which_o we_o do_v not_o which_o be_v untrue_a 4._o that_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v manifest_o heretical_a yea_o 5._o if_o he_o will_v not_o be_v manifest_o impertinent_a he_o must_v infer_v that_o to_o renounce_v any_o doctrine_n receive_v by_o these_o church_n or_o not_o to_o acknowledge_v any_o council_n to_o be_v general_n which_o they_o do_v not_o must_v necessary_o be_v schismatical_a and_o unchurch_n we_o which_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o prove_v unless_o it_o appear_v that_o we_o have_v not_o sufficient_a cause_n to_o do_v so_o last_o we_o say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n can_v produce_v no_o church_n but_o manifest_o schismatical_a or_o heretical_a with_o who_o she_o communicate_v his_o four_o condition_n be_v sect._n 7_o that_o we_o must_v either_o declare_v other_o calvinistical_a reform_a church_n which_o manifest_o have_v no_o succession_n of_o lawful_o ordain_v minister_n enable_v valid_o to_o celebrate_v and_o administer_v sacrament_n and_o to_o be_v no_o heretical_a or_o schismatical_a congregation_n or_o show_v how_o we_o can_v acquit_v ourselves_o from_o schism_n who_o have_v authoritative_o resort_v to_o their_o synod_n and_o to_o who_o a_o general_a permission_n be_v give_v to_o acknowledge_v they_o true_a reform_v and_o sufficient_o orthodox_n church_n here_o again_o be_v many_o supposition_n like_o the_o former_a as_o 1._o that_o to_o resort_v to_o the_o synod_n of_o man_n schismatical_a be_v to_o be_v schismatic_n which_o make_v the_o whole_a world_n schismatic_n for_o be_v not_o the_o eastern_a or_o western_a church_n schismatical_a in_o the_o difference_n about_o easter_n and_o do_v they_o not_o both_o convene_v in_o a_o general_n synod_n yea_o do_v not_o the_o orthodox_n bishop_n resort_n to_o the_o synod_n at_o arriminum_fw-la where_o there_o be_v many_o arrian_n bishop_n be_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n schismatical_a for_o resort_v to_o the_o
general_n council_n as_o be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_o 2._o you_o evident_o suppose_v that_o such_o a_o visible_a society_n infallible_a in_o fundamental_o can_v mislead_v we_o to_o our_o danger_n and_o that_o by_o assent_v to_o all_o its_o decision_n we_o be_v necessary_o free_a from_o the_o sin_n of_o schism_n now_o see_v according_a to_o our_o former_a deduction_n such_o a_o visible_a society_n may_v require_v the_o profession_n of_o what_o i_o know_v or_o judge_v to_o be_v a_o error_n and_o so_o a_o lie_n the_o practice_n of_o what_o i_o know_v to_o be_v forbid_v and_o so_o a_o sin_n you_o must_v suppose_v also_o that_o to_o lie_v against_o my_o conscience_n though_o it_o be_v a_o sin_n of_o great_a affinity_n with_o that_o which_o shall_v never_o be_v forgive_v or_o practise_v continual_o a_o sin_n though_o it_o render_v the_o condition_n which_o interest_n we_o in_o the_o covenant_n of_o grace_n viz._n sincere_a and_o impartial_a obedience_n impossible_a not_o to_o be_v dangerous_a and_o that_o to_o renounce_v communion_n with_o other_o that_o can_v swallow_v such_o condition_n can_v be_v the_o sin_n of_o schism_n to_o p._n 471._o l._n 19_o add_v and_o hence_o it_o appear_v how_o ridiculous_o you_o insult_v over_o the_o dr._n for_o say_v mr._n c._n p._n 302._o he_o will_v comply_v with_o none_o of_o your_o defilement_n when_o to_o comply_v with_o they_o be_v not_o to_o communiate_v with_o you_o in_o other_o thing_n or_o to_o acknowledge_v you_o as_o brethren_n albeit_o you_o differ_v from_o we_o in_o something_o which_o we_o esteem_v a_o defilement_n in_o you_o but_o to_o practice_v a_o sin_n or_o to_o assert_v a_o lie_n to_o live_v in_o continual_a hypocrisy_n and_o disobedience_n to_o god_n law_n it_o be_v a_o shame_n that_o you_o shall_v triumph_v in_o this_o trifle_a sophism_n viz._n we_o comply_v with_o lutheran_n and_o huguenot_n who_o sure_o be_v not_o without_o some_o little_a stain_n and_o never_o take_v notice_n of_o that_o answer_n which_o you_o meet_v with_o very_o frequent_o in_o mr._n chillingworth_n that_o for_o our_o continue_v in_o communion_n with_o they_o the_o justification_n of_o it_o be_v that_o they_o require_v not_o the_o beleif_n and_o profession_n of_o those_o error_n among_o the_o condition_n of_o their_o communion_n which_o put_v a_o main_a difference_n betwixt_o they_o and_o you_o because_o we_o may_v continue_v in_o their_o communion_n without_o the_o profession_n of_o their_o error_n but_o in_o you_o we_o can_v to_o page_n 478_o l._n 15._o add_v and_o whereas_o you_o tell_v we_o chap._n 20._o sect_n 10._o that_o the_o doctrine_n the_o preacher_n treat_v off_o and_o which_o the_o trent_n council_n define_v be_v convey_v to_o we_o by_o the_o general_n practice_v of_o the_o church_n and_o be_v always_o matter_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v the_o most_o notorious_a untruth_n imaginable_a be_v it_o possible_a that_o the_o trent_n council_n definition_n touch_v the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n shall_v be_v a_o continue_a uninterupted_a tradition_n through_o all_o age_n when_o the_o contrary_a be_v make_v so_o evident_a by_o dr._n cousin_n through_o every_o age_n of_o the_o church_n deduce_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o this_o point_n be_v it_o possible_a that_o image_n worship_n shall_v be_v the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o all_o age_n of_o the_o church_n when_o beside_o the_o numerous_a citation_n produce_v by_o i_o to_o the_o contrary_a clemens_n alexandrinus_n tertullian_n origen_n and_o chrysostome_n hold_v even_o the_o make_n of_o image_n unprofitable_a and_o unlawful_a and_o assert_v that_o christian_n be_v forbid_v that_o deceitful_a art_n dally_v de_fw-fr imag._n l._n 1._o c._n 6._o can_v they_o have_v talk_v thus_o and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n worship_n image_n can_v the_o church_n of_o god_n throughout_o all_o age_n esteem_v your_o service_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n agreeable_a to_o scripture_n when_o not_o one_o commentator_n upon_o the_o 14._o of_o corinthian_n but_o speak_v apparent_o against_o it_o when_o justinian_n and_o charles_n the_o great_a who_o law_n say_v you_o be_v but_o the_o church_n faith_n and_o canon_n reduce_v into_o imperial_a law_n so_o peremptory_o forbid_v it_o as_o contrary_a to_o the_o word_n of_o god_n last_o to_o add_v no_o more_o can_v that_o purgatory_n which_o you_o derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o beleif_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n throughout_o all_o age_n when_o as_o first_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n constant_o interpret_v all_o the_o scripture_n you_o apply_v to_o purgatory_n another_o way_n as_o be_v evidence_v by_o mr._n dally_n de_fw-fr satis_fw-la hum._n l._n 6._o c._n 4._o when_o second_o they_o assert_v that_o there_o be_v no_o place_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n after_o death_n id_fw-la c._n 6._o and_o three_o that_o we_o shall_v remain_v for_o ever_o where_o death_n find_v we_o c._n 7._o four_o that_o no_o punishment_n abide_v the_o faithful_a after_o death_n c._n 8._o five_o that_o the_o soul_n of_o the_o faithful_a rest_n and_o enjoy_v felicity_n present_o after_o death_n c._n 10._o yea_o last_o when_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n do_v confident_o affirm_v that_o all_o the_o faithful_a be_v at_o rest_n after_o death_n c._n 11._o these_o thing_n be_v consider_v the_o defence_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n that_o they_o make_v no_o new_a decree_n be_v as_o unseemly_a in_o your_o mouth_n as_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o apostle_n we_o must_v obey_v god_n rather_o than_o man_n can_v be_v in_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o great_a rebel_n to_o page_n 198._o l._n 15._o add_v and_o this_o interpretation_n be_v back_v with_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o father_n st._n austin_n ex_fw-la professo_fw-la handle_v this_o question_n whether_o these_o word_n i_o will_v no_o more_o drink_n of_o the_o fruit_n of_o the_o vine_n refer_v to_o the_o sacrament_n determine_v for_o we_o as_o will_v be_v evident_a to_o any_o that_o will_v consult_v he_o treat_v the_o consen_v evan._n l._n 3._o c._n 1._o and_o again_o l._n 1._o c._n 42._o which_o make_v bellarm._n consider_v this_o place_n cry_v out_o augustinus_n non_fw-la perpendit_fw-la hunc_fw-la locum_fw-la diligenter_n st._n austin_n do_v not_o diligent_o weigh_v this_o place_n in_o mat._n c._n 26._o v._n 29._o yea_o maldonate_fw-it assure_v we_o that_o jerome_n in_o his_o comment_n bede_n euthymius_n and_o theophylact_fw-mi do_v all_o refer_v this_o passage_n to_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o who_o you_o may_v add_v clem._n alex._n paedag._n l._n 2._o c._n 2._o p._n 116._o orig._n in_o mat._n trac_fw-la 25._o epiphan_n count_v haer._n l._n 2._o haer._n 47._o st._n cyprian_n ep._n 63._o chrysost_n hom._n in_o mat._n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d eucher_n in_o mat._n c._n 26._o v._n 29._o with_o divers_a other_o diligent_o collect_v by_o dr._n feat_o in_o his_o book_n against_o transub_v p._n 204._o etc._n etc._n
you_o citation_n still_o impertinent_a again_o be_v it_o not_o a_o wonder_n that_o you_o shall_v so_o confident_o tell_v we_o that_o dr._n 310._o p._n 310._o hammond_n shall_v contract_v his_o challenge_n to_o three_o hundred_o year_n when_o as_o he_o himself_o have_v twice_o consider_v this_o calumny_n 142._o p._n 142._o 1._o in_o his_o reply_n where_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v nowhere_o intimate_v in_o that_o treatise_n that_o we_o be_v not_o ready_a to_o stand_v to_o the_o four_o age_n but_o only_o that_o the_o three_o first_o age_n and_o four_o general_a council_n be_v competent_a witness_n of_o the_o apostolical_a doctrine_n and_o tradition_n it_o be_v unimaginable_a that_o any_o thing_n shall_v be_v so_o per_fw-la saltum_fw-la convey_v to_o we_o from_o the_o apostle_n 141._o p._n 141._o as_o to_o leap_v over_o those_o three_o century_n next_o to_o they_o without_o leave_v any_o footstep_n discernible_a among_o they_o the_o like_a we_o have_v in_o his_o schism_n disarm_v 4._o c●●_n s._n 4._o and_o yet_o these_o thing_n so_o manifest_o disclaim_v must_v be_v still_o object_v without_o the_o least_o regard_n of_o ingenuity_n or_o truth_n and_o when_o bishop_n laud_n tell_v you_o 2●7_n 〈◊〉_d 28._o p._n 2●7_n that_o we_o offer_v to_o be_v try_v by_o all_o the_o ancient_a council_n and_o father_n of_o the_o church_n for_o four_o hundred_o year_n and_o somewhat_o further_o do_v he_o not_o give_v you_o scope_n enough_o if_o you_o can_v find_v any_o of_o your_o doctrine_n receive_v by_o the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o article_n of_o faith_n or_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v within_o that_o time_n be_v it_o not_o a_o shrewd_a sign_n that_o they_o be_v not_o tradition_n receive_v from_o christ_n or_o his_o apostle_n at_o last_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o evident_a truth_n on_o your_o side_n have_v extort_a a_o confession_n from_o the_o mouth_n and_o pen_n of_o a_o world_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a writer_n 5._o 〈◊〉_d 5._o that_o antiquity_n declare_v itself_o for_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o for_o proof_n of_o this_o you_o refer_v we_o to_o the_o protestant_n apology_n the_o triple_a cord_n with_o a_o etc._n etc._n 313._o pag._n 313._o at_o the_o end_n of_o it_o and_o then_o please_v yourself_o in_o this_o extraordinary_a advantage_n and_o infer_v that_o we_o be_v proper_o condemn_v by_o our_o own_o conscience_n affingimus_fw-la add_v to_o this_o dr._n james_n his_o confutation_n of_o romish_a superstition_n by_o their_o own_o testimony_n dr._n field_n appendix_n etc._n etc._n de_fw-fr usu_fw-la patrum_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 4._o excogitato_fw-la commento_fw-la persaepe_fw-la negamus_fw-la &_o comm_n dum_fw-la iis_fw-la sensum_fw-la affingimus_fw-la answ_n 1._o sure_o you_o be_v not_o such_o a_o stranger_n in_o england_n as_o to_o be_v ignorant_a that_o your_o catholic_n apology_n have_v be_v answer_v by_o the_o reverend_a bishop_n morton_n in_o folio_n and_o the_o antiquity_n of_o our_o religion_n show_v from_o many_o thousand_o confession_n of_o the_o roman_a doctor_n and_o must_v not_o you_o then_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o your_o own_o argument_n nay_o let_v a_o man_n consult_v your_o indices_fw-la expurgatorii_fw-la how_o many_o thousand_o sentence_n of_o your_o own_o author_n will_v he_o find_v condemn_v and_o order_v to_o be_v expunge_v only_o because_o the_o evidence_n of_o truth_n force_v they_o to_o speak_v like_o protestant_n yea_o the_o author_n of_o the_o belgian_n index_n stick_v not_o to_o confess_v as_o mr._n dally_n have_v it_o that_o when_o we_o oppose_v unto_o they_o in_o disputation_n the_o error_n as_o they_o be_v please_v to_o call_v they_o of_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n they_o do_v either_o extenuate_v or_o excuse_v they_o or_o very_o frequent_o find_v out_o some_o artifice_n or_o invention_n to_o deny_v they_o or_o feign_v some_o sense_n that_o they_o may_v commodious_o put_v upon_o they_o and_o therefore_o they_o will_v afford_v the_o like_a ingenuity_n to_o bertram_n albeit_o it_o will_v not_o much_o trouble_v they_o be_v he_o out_o of_o the_o world_n and_o have_v expunge_v some_o of_o the_o most_o evident_a place_n against_o they_o will_v let_v he_o pass_v thus_o geld_v as_o they_o have_v do_v many_o other_o writing_n of_o ancient_a catholic_n into_o the_o world_n that_o so_o heretic_n may_v not_o object_v that_o they_o burn_v and_o prohibit_v antiquity_n when_o it_o make_v against_o they_o yea_o to_o pass_v over_o your_o addition_n to_o detraction_n from_o belgicus_n de_fw-fr usu_fw-la patrum_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 4._o def._n ecc._n ang._n c._n 13._o s_o 10._o index_n belgicus_n yea_o and_o prohibition_n of_o the_o ancient_a father_n of_o which_o tho_o learned_a dally_n chrakanthorp_n and_o other_o afford_v sufficient_a instance_n let_v we_o but_o see_v a_o little_a how_o one_o single_a index_n expurgatorius_fw-la have_v deal_v with_o the_o index_n of_o the_o father_n in_o that_o very_a point_n of_o justification_n in_o which_o you_o will_v have_v we_o confess_v antiquity_n to_o be_v our_o adversary_n out_o of_o the_o index_n of_o st._n austin_n must_v be_v expunge_v fides_n sola_fw-la justificat_fw-la opera_fw-la et_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la justificent_a sunt_fw-la tamen_fw-la ad_fw-la salutem_fw-la necessaria_fw-la out_o of_o the_o index_n of_o st._n chry._n sost_n fide_fw-la sola_fw-la hominem_fw-la justificari_fw-la salutem_fw-la esse_fw-la ex_fw-la sola_fw-la gratia_fw-la non_fw-la ex_fw-la eporibus_fw-la out_o of_o hilary_n fides_n sola_fw-la justificat_fw-la albeit_o they_o be_v his_o very_a word_n out_o of_o ambrose_n impius_fw-la per_fw-la solam_fw-la fidem_fw-la justificatur_fw-la apud_fw-la deum_fw-la abraham_n non_fw-la ex_fw-la operibus_fw-la legis_fw-la sed_fw-la sola_fw-la fide_fw-la justificatum_fw-la vident_fw-la out_o of_o the_o index_n of_o st._n jerom_n impium_fw-la per_fw-la solam_fw-la fidem_fw-la justificat_fw-la deus_fw-la ut_fw-la abrahae_fw-la ita_fw-la omnibus_fw-la qui_fw-la ex_fw-la gentibus_fw-la credunt_fw-la sola_fw-la fides_fw-la ad_fw-la justitiam_fw-la reputatur_fw-la out_o of_o st._n basils_n hae●_n est_fw-la perfecta_fw-la gloriatio_fw-la apud_fw-la deum_fw-la quando_fw-la non_fw-la ob_fw-la justitiam_fw-la svam_fw-la quis_fw-la se_fw-la jactat_fw-la sed_fw-la novit_fw-la quidem_fw-la seipsum_fw-la verae_fw-la justitiae_fw-la indignum_fw-la esse_fw-la sola_fw-la autem_fw-la fide_fw-la in_o christum_fw-la justificatum_fw-la with_o other_o passage_n of_o the_o like_a import_n which_o evident_o speak_v the_o mind_n if_o not_o the_o word_n of_o the_o text_n itself_o what_o can_v more_o clear_o evidence_n that_o you_o sufficient_o know_v antiquity_n to_o be_v against_o you_o then_o that_o you_o use_v all_o mean_n imaginable_a to_o conceal_v it_o from_o we_o or_o make_v it_o speak_v what_o you_o know_v it_o do_v not_o in_o the_o same_o section_n sect._n 6_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o citation_n and_o argument_n the_o doctor_n use_v 19_o pag_n 19_o have_v be_v produce_v 100_o time_n whither_o this_o be_v so_o or_o no_o i_o be_o sure_a the_o same_o may_v be_v evidence_v of_o all_o that_o you_o have_v produce_v against_o he_o you_o go_v on_o and_o say_v sect._n 7_o that_o he_o do_v well_o to_o fix_v a_o distinct_a measure_n of_o time_n after_o which_o only_a whatever_a doctrine_n be_v broach_v 20._o pag._n 20._o ought_v in_o his_o opinion_n to_o be_v esteem_v novelty_n viz._n the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o downward_o till_o the_o four_o general_n council_n inclusive_o ans_fw-fr this_o be_v a_o evident_a untruth_n but_o yet_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v tell_v in_o the_o proem_n or_o else_o every_o citation_n of_o your_o book_n will_v have_v be_v impertinent_a nor_o will_v you_o have_v be_v able_a to_o have_v find_v any_o thing_n which_o can_v have_v be_v nickname_v a_o answer_n to_o dr._n pierce_n what_o other_o ground_n mr._n c._n have_v to_o infinuate_v this_o palpable_a untruth_n be_v not_o imaginable_a the_o doctor_n upon_o this_o account_n defy_v this_o antagonist_n and_o rejoice_v to_o find_v that_o his_o sermon_n can_v be_v confute_v without_o the_o artifice_n of_o more_o falsehood_n than_o he_o have_v page_n but_o sure_o the_o doctor_n must_v have_v somewhat_o whence_o this_o say_n of_o mr._n c._n take_v its_o rise_n it_o be_v not_o imaginable_a that_o even_o a_o papist_n though_o impudent_a enough_o to_o do_v it_o shall_v be_v so_o imprudent_a as_o to_o fasten_v this_o upon_o the_o doctor_n without_o the_o least_o show_n of_o evidence_n ans_fw-fr assure_o there_o be_v nothing_o in_o the_o doctor_n sermon_n from_o whence_o it_o can_v tolerable_o be_v argue_v indeed_o the_o doctor_n say_v they_o ever_o complain_v we_o have_v leave_v their_o church_n but_o never_o show_v we_o that_o jota_n as_o to_o which_o we_o have_v leave_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o the_o apostle_n or_o the_o yet_o uncorrupted_a and_o primitive_a church_n or_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n now_o i_o hope_v to_o say_v we_o have_v not_o leave_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n or_o desert_a they_o be_v not_o to_o
convince_v their_o private_a reason_n the_o use_n of_o which_o we_o allow_v they_o but_o the_o church_n infallible_a authority_n be_v none_o of_o they_o now_o be_v it_o all_o one_o to_o say_v you_o must_v believe_v this_o because_o the_o church_n which_o be_v infallible_a assert_n it_o as_o you_o to_o we_o and_o you_o must_v do_v this_o because_o the_o church_n have_v enjoin_v it_o and_o therefore_o not_o be_v unlawful_a ought_v for_o peace_n sake_n to_o be_v submit_v to_o as_o we_o to_o they_o keep_v your_o weapon_n to_o yourselves_o we_o can_v fight_v and_o conquer_v without_o they_o in_o the_o next_o place_n sect._n 8_o when_o he_o declare_v that_o the_o papist_n be_v rule_v and_o guide_v by_o scripture_n and_o reason_n 6._o mr._n c._n s_o 6._o and_o the_o primitive_a church_n this_o be_v but_o a_o specious_a pretence_n to_o varnish_v over_o their_o church_n usurpation_n when_o they_o have_v place_v all_o these_o with_o their_o own_o church_n upon_o the_o bench_n they_o signify_v no_o more_o there_o then_o do_v the_o russian_a emperor_n poor_a senator_n at_o the_o solemn_a audience_n of_o foreign_a ambassador_n that_o sit_v only_o to_o make_v a_o show_n the_o same_o mockery_n do_v the_o pontifician_n put_v upon_o scripture_n and_o reason_n etc._n etc._n when_o they_o give_v they_o the_o name_n and_o title_n of_o judge_n and_o yet_o deny_v they_o the_o office_n of_o judge_n and_o this_o they_o do_v when_o they_o make_v their_o own_o decree_n our_o ultimate_n and_o supreme_a rule_n and_o guide_v for_o if_o scripturr_v must_v bend_v to_o their_o decree_n and_o not_o their_o decree_n to_o scripture_n and_o if_o we_o must_v have_v no_o sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o what_o they_o think_v fit_a than_o their_o decree_n and_o not_o scripture_n must_v be_v our_o last_o rule_n for_o that_o be_v the_o rule_n to_o which_o other_o thing_n be_v reduce_v if_o therefore_o from_o their_o decree_n we_o must_v receive_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v scripture_n itself_o then_o be_v they_o the_o supreme_a standard_n and_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o sole_a judge_n of_o it_o as_o a_o judge_n if_o he_o have_v a_o unlimited_a power_n of_o interpret_n the_o law_n will_v be_v both_o judge_n and_o law_n too_o thus_o when_o the_o norman_a conqueror_n promise_v the_o english_a that_o he_o will_v govern_v they_o by_o their_o own_o law_n yet_o if_o he_o do_v as_o some_o say_v he_o do_v take_v a_o absolute_a power_n of_o interpret_n they_o and_o allow_v they_o to_o say_v only_o what_o he_o please_v can_v he_o be_v think_v to_o satisfy_v his_o promise_n may_v not_o all_o exclaim_v that_o his_o own_o will_n and_o tyranny_n and_o not_o the_o law_n rule_v they_o because_o he_o rule_v they_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o he_o will_v if_o there_o have_v be_v no_o such_o law_n and_o so_o the_o law_n be_v make_v useless_a as_o if_o they_o have_v never_o be_v law_n thus_o the_o romanist_n may_v tell_v we_o that_o they_o acknowledge_v scripture_n to_o be_v in_o part_n our_o rule_n yet_o if_o their_o church_n must_v have_v a_o unlimited_a power_n to_o interpret_v it_o and_o put_v what_o sense_n upon_o it_o they_o please_v and_o that_o we_o must_v upon_o peril_n of_o damnation_n receive_v their_o sense_n howsoever_o it_o seem_v to_o we_o absurd_a and_o contradictory_n to_o the_o scripture_n itself_o they_o need_v no_o more_o to_o shut_v out_o scripture_n and_o to_o make_v themselves_o both_o sole_a lord_n and_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n it_o be_v nothing_o for_o they_o to_o comply_v with_o scripture_n when_o they_o have_v force_v that_o to_o comply_v with_o they_o after_o the_o same_o manner_n council_n and_o father_n and_o all_o their_o venerable_a antiquity_n which_o they_o pretend_v so_o much_o to_o reverence_v must_v truckle_n to_o their_o present_a church_n for_o they_o will_v allow_v we_o to_o receive_v they_o no_o further_o than_o they_o agree_v with_o their_o own_o decree_n see_v we_o must_v fetch_v the_o sense_n of_o their_o writing_n from_o their_o decree_n so_o that_o scripture_n father_n council_n and_o all_o must_v bend_v to_o their_o will_n and_o can_v give_v no_o other_o judgement_n than_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n will_v permit_v if_o we_o must_v as_o they_o contend_v that_o we_o ought_v receive_v their_o judgement_n from_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n it_o be_v a_o pretty_a device_n first_o to_o rule_v the_o rule_n and_o then_o to_o be_v rule_v by_o it_o when_o therefore_o they_o talk_v of_o other_o guide_n and_o rule_n beside_o their_o own_o pride_n and_o tyranny_n their_o hypocrisy_n be_v so_o transparent_a through_o all_o its_o disguise_n that_o we_o can_v but_o discern_v it_o unless_o we_o be_v as_o blind_a as_o they_o will_v have_v we_o and_o last_o as_o for_o our_o private_a reason_n mr._n c._n will_v call_v they_o guide_v too_o strange_a he_o dare_v trust_v himself_o with_o a_o guide_n so_o fallacious_a but_o to_o avoid_v the_o danger_n of_o that_o it_o must_v with_o humility_n follow_v the_o church_n a_o strange_a guide_n that_o must_v be_v tame_o guide_v and_o lead_v in_o a_o string_n by_o another_o if_o the_o church_n can_v command_v our_o reason_n then_o must_v they_o necessary_o cease_v to_o be_v guide_n and_o blind_o follow_v she_o whithersoever_o she_o lead_v i_o wish_v they_o will_v make_v their_o church_n but_o such_o a_o guide_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v soon_o agree_v in_o this_o point_n if_o then_o to_o exclude_v reason_n from_o guide_v we_o be_v to_o become_v beast_n as_o mr._n c._n teach_v we_o in_o the_o five_o paragraph_n of_o this_o chapter_n then_o what_o must_v all_o romanist_n be_v for_o nothing_o be_v more_o plain_a then_o that_o what_o be_v whole_o guide_v by_o another_o be_v not_o itself_o a_o guide_n otherwise_o every_o thing_n that_o be_v guide_v may_v be_v call_v a_o guide_n therefore_o if_o your_o reason_n must_v follow_v the_o guidance_n of_o your_o church_n they_o can_v be_v your_o guide_n and_o then_o in_o your_o own_o opinion_n what_o difference_n between_o a_o catholic_a and_o his_o ass_n now_o at_o length_n have_v make_v my_o way_n through_o this_o black_a regiment_n of_o falsehood_n sect._n 9_o i_o may_v combat_v his_o great_a argument_n so_o careful_o guard_v with_o so_o long_a a_o train_n of_o fiction_n for_o his_o church_n infallibility_n and_o our_o meek_a submission_n to_o it_o but_o before_o i_o cope_v with_o they_o single_o it_o be_v not_o impertinent_a to_o undermine_v a_o hypothesis_n on_o which_o they_o seem_v partly_o to_o stand_v which_o stratagem_n may_v do_v i_o some_o service_n do_v i_o want_v it_o that_o be_v if_o his_o argument_n be_v as_o strong_a as_o they_o be_v weak_a and_o that_o be_v this_o he_o through_o the_o whole_a chapter_n sly_o suppose_v and_o sometime_o assert_n a_o necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n as_o if_o without_o such_o a_o one_o the_o way_n to_o salvation_n be_v uncertain_a and_o controversy_n endless_a 1._o but_o he_o shall_v first_o prove_v that_o god_n have_v appoint_v a_o infallible_a judge_n and_o therefore_o its_o necessary_a there_o shall_v be_v one_o and_o not_o conclude_v that_o he_o have_v appoint_v one_o because_o he_o conceive_v a_o necessity_n of_o it_o i_o can_v name_v a_o hundred_o privilege_n that_o mr._n c._n can_v conceive_v to_o be_v high_o beneficial_a to_o the_o church_n which_o yet_o god_n never_o grant_v to_o it_o and_o if_o we_o may_v deduce_v infallibility_n from_o the_o necessity_n or_o conveniency_n of_o it_o to_o secure_v we_o in_o our_o way_n to_o heaven_n and_o decide_v our_o controversy_n then_o why_o may_v we_o not_o conclude_v that_o some_o body_n else_o beside_o your_o pope_n and_o council_n be_v infallible_a be_v it_o not_o more_o conducive_a to_o these_o end_n that_o every_o bishop_n shall_v be_v infallible_a more_o still_o that_o every_o preacher_n and_o more_o yet_o that_o every_o individual_a christian_n will_v not_o these_o infallible_o secure_v they_o from_o all_o danger_n of_o err_v may_v not_o god_n send_v some_o infallible_a interpreter_n from_o heaven_n to_o expound_v all_o obscure_a and_o doubtful_a place_n of_o scripture_n may_v not_o the_o apostle_n have_v leave_v we_o such_o a_o commentary_n may_v not_o god_n if_o he_o have_v please_v have_v speak_v so_o perspicuous_o in_o scripture_n that_o there_o shall_v be_v no_o need_n of_o a_o infallible_a interpreter_n to_o make_v it_o plain_o but_o if_o from_o the_o advantage_n and_o use_v of_o these_o dispensation_n we_o shall_v infer_v their_o actual_a existence_n the_o conclusion_n will_v confute_v the_o premise_n 2._o the_o plea_n for_o a_o infallible_a guide_n to_o secure_v we_o from_o wander_v out_o of_o the_o way_n to_o heaven_n be_v invalidate_v by_o the_o plainness_n and_o easiness_n of_o the_o way_n which_o we_o can_v miss_v unless_o we_o will_v so_o that_o he_o
so_o if_o you_o say_v he_o be_v infallible_a not_o in_o decrece_v but_o in_o this_o that_o he_o shall_v not_o confirm_v a_o error_n i_o answ_n this_o assertion_n imply_v either_o that_o the_o pope_n è_fw-fr cathedrâ_fw-la can_v err_v and_o then_o the_o very_a idiot_n may_v be_v style_v infallible_a as_o well_o as_o a_o general_n council_n because_o the_o pope_n è_fw-fr cathedrâ_fw-la can_v confirm_v what_o he_o erroneous_o dictate_v or_o 2._o that_o in_o confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o general_a council_n only_o he_o be_v unerrable_a and_o then_o pray_v you_o where_o be_v that_o promise_n of_o such_o peculiar_a assistance_n at_o that_o time_n where_o be_v that_o scripture_n or_o single_a passage_n of_o any_o father_n that_o albeit_o the_o pope_n may_v err_v in_o decree_a any_o matter_n of_o faith_n yet_o in_o confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n he_o can_v ede_fw-mi tabulas_fw-la but_o if_o not_o one_o jota_n in_o scripture_n reason_n or_o antiquity_n for_o this_o how_o can_v i_o be_v assure_v that_o it_o be_v so_o and_o consequent_o have_v a_o infallible_a guide_n to_o lean_v and_o rest_v upon_o as_o for_o scripture_n what_o place_n can_v they_o bring_v but_o that_o of_o luk._n 22._o i_o have_v ask_v for_o thou_o that_o thy_o faith_n fail_v not_o but_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n of_o teach_v the_o whole_a church_n do_v he_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n may_v fail_v in_o manner_n but_o shall_v not_o in_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n or_o in_o decree_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n but_o not_o in_o confirm_v they_o or_o do_v he_o at_o all_o speak_v of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n yea_o 2._o do_v that_o prayer_n hinder_v the_o denial_n of_o christ_n by_o peter_n be_v peter_n then_o summus_fw-la pontifex_fw-la or_o not_o if_o not_o then_o do_v not_o this_o concern_v he_o in_o that_o relation_n and_o consequent_o neither_o those_o that_o succeed_v he_o if_o he_o be_v than_o what_o hinder_v but_o that_o the_o summus_fw-la pontifex_fw-la may_v fail_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o thing_n to_o the_o purpose_n in_o that_o of_o mat._n on_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o for_o 1._o be_v here_o one_o syllable_n of_o the_o pope_n or_o infallibility_n or_o if_o there_o be_v be_v there_o any_o thing_n of_o it_o for_o the_o pope_n more_o than_o for_o the_o church_n why_o then_o do_v our_o author_n produce_v it_o for_o the_o church_n and_o if_o touch_v the_o pope_n be_v it_o rather_o in_o confirm_v the_o decree_n of_o council_n then_o in_o decree_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o as_o for_o antiquity_n have_v this_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o primitive_a time_n can_v they_o have_v avoid_v this_o argument_n the_o pope_n have_v confirm_v this_o ergo_fw-la be_v true_a this_o council_n be_v approve_v by_o the_o pope_n ergo_fw-la be_v infallible_a but_o there_o be_v not_o one_o syllable_n to_o be_v hear_v in_o all_o antiquity_n of_o this_o nature_n again_o if_o the_o pope_n must_v be_v include_v may_v not_o the_o pope_n and_o council_n run_v counter_a and_o what_o shall_v we_o do_v then_o what_o shall_v we_o do_v in_o a_o time_n of_o schism_n when_o there_o be_v several_a pretender_n to_o the_o popedom_n as_o frequent_o there_o have_v be_v to_o who_o then_o must_v we_o hearken_v how_o shall_v we_o know_v which_o of_o these_o be_v the_o true_a pope_n if_o a_o council_n must_v decide_v it_o as_o indeed_o none_o else_o can_v either_o the_o council_n be_v fallible_a and_o may_v determine_v wrong_a or_o infallible_a and_o then_o it_o be_v so_o without_o the_o pope_n and_o so_o the_o assertion_n i_o dispute_v against_o be_v desert_v and_o another_o take_v up_o of_o which_o anon_o again_o suppose_v any_o pope_n misdemeanour_n be_v to_o be_v judge_v of_o as_o for_o example_n whether_o sixtus_n quintus_n get_v into_o st._n peter_n chair_n by_o simony_n in_o this_o case_n the_o pope_n can_v be_v judge_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o council_n without_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o infallible_a how_o can_v we_o know_v whether_o their_o determination_n be_v aright_o see_v it_o may_v as_o well_o be_v wrong_a further_o tell_v i_o how_o may_v i_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o true_a pope_n if_o he_o come_v in_o by_o simony_n he_o be_v none_o and_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o i_o to_o know_v that_o see_v some_o have_v be_v simonaical_a how_o can_v i_o be_v certain_a that_o many_o other_o have_v not_o be_v so_o too_o and_o if_o so_o than_o not_o only_o all_o fallibility_n be_v cease_v but_o your_o succession_n too_o for_o all_o the_o cardinal_n create_v by_o a_o simonaical_a pope_n can_v be_v no_o cardinal_n and_o if_o so_o then_o sixtus_n quintus_fw-la be_v evident_o convict_v of_o simony_n before_o the_o council_n of_o sicil_n can_v be_v no_o pope_n his_o cardinal_n no_o cardinal_n neither_o can_v the_o pope_n create_v since_o by_o those_o cardinal_n be_v true_o such_o so_o that_o from_o his_o time_n your_o church_n have_v be_v without_o a_o lawful_a universal_a head_n again_o how_o shall_v i_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o pope_n election_n be_v legal_a for_o unless_o it_o be_v so_o yourselves_o deny_v he_o to_o be_v pope_n when_o sometime_o the_o people_n sometime_o the_o clergy_n choose_v he_o sometime_o both_o in_o one_o age_n the_o emperor_n in_o another_o the_o cardinal_n in_o a_o three_o a_o general_n council_n further_o i_o may_v ask_v you_o how_o you_o be_v assure_v the_o pope_n be_v right_o ordain_v and_o baptise_a for_o if_o he_o be_v not_o by_o your_o own_o principle_n he_o can_v be_v no_o pope_n and_o that_o he_o be_v i_o can_v be_v certain_a unless_o i_o can_v know_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o priest_n that_o baptise_a he_o and_o the_o bishop_n that_o ordain_v he_o and_o though_o i_o do_v know_v what_o can_v be_v know_v their_o intention_n yet_o how_o shall_v i_o know_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o person_n that_o baptise_a and_o ordain_v they_o and_o so_o on_o to_o that_o endless_a chain_n of_o uncertainty_n propound_v by_o mr._n chillingworth_n in_o his_o second_n chap._n which_o it_o be_v impossible_a you_o shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o solve_v but_o i_o be_o oppress_v with_o copiousness_n of_o argument_n and_o therefore_o must_v break_v off_o from_o this_o member_n to_o the_o next_o 2._o again_o therefore_o if_o you_o say_v sect._n 2_o that_o the_o council_n be_v infallible_a without_o the_o pope_n then_o 1._o 8._o p._n 51._o sect_n 8._o you_o contradict_v yourself_o in_o require_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o obligation_n of_o the_o council_n canon_n for_o if_o they_o be_v infallible_a be_v we_o not_o bind_v to_o assent_v to_o they_o notwithstanding_o or_o can_v we_o do_v well_o in_o oppose_v what_o be_v infallible_a 2._o how_o shall_v we_o know_v whether_o the_o pope_n or_o council_n be_v supreme_a when_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n and_o constance_n determine_v it_o one_o way_n the_o council_n of_o lateran_n the_o other_o way_n so_o the_o second_o council_n of_o nice_a assert_v the_o corporeity_n of_o angel_n the_o first_o of_o lateran_n deny_v it_o can_v infallible_a person_n contradict_v each_o other_o who_o must_v be_v the_o member_n of_o this_o council_n whether_o only_a bishop_n or_o presbyter_n and_o deacon_n too_o upon_o what_o certain_a account_n do_v you_o shut_v out_o presbyter_n if_o you_o admit_v only_a bishop_n or_o if_o you_o require_v that_o presbyter_n be_v call_v to_o the_o council_n what_o certain_a ground_n can_v you_o produce_v for_o it_o why_o shall_v you_o exclude_v layman_n from_o a_o place_n in_o these_o your_o council_n especial_o when_o the_o scripture_n tell_v we_o that_o in_o the_o council_n which_o be_v call_v about_o circumcision_n mention_n be_v make_v not_o only_o of_o apostle_n but_o of_o the_o elder_n of_o the_o church_n and_o of_o the_o brethren_n act_n 15.23_o bellarm._n say_v indeed_o that_o this_o multitude_n be_v call_v not_o to_o consent_v and_o judge_n but_o only_o to_o consent_v but_o upon_o what_o authority_n do_v he_o build_v this_o interpretation_n or_o what_o certainty_n can_v we_o have_v in_o the_o determination_n of_o holy_a scripture_n if_o we_o may_v thus_o apply_v unto_o they_o our_o idle_a fancy_n add_v and_o distinguish_v where_o no_o other_o scripture_n no_o circumstance_n or_o context_n lead_v we_o to_o it_o but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a strong_o be_v insinuate_v for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o definitive_a sentence_n run_v thus_o it_o have_v please_v the_o apostle_n and_o elder_n with_o the_o whole_a church_n etc._n etc._n further_o why_o must_v bishop_n be_v call_v to_o it_o out_o of_o one_o country_n and_o not_o our_o of_o another_o why_o will_v so_o many_o out_o of_o this_o kingdom_n suffice_v what_o if_o the_o member_n of_o the_o council_n be_v choose_v illegal_o
evident_o know_v to_o be_v such_o or_o open_o declare_v such_o oblige_v no_o man_n that_o the_o king_n oath_n be_v unjust_a be_v sufficient_o declare_v by_o the_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n himself_o you_o see_v now_o that_o the_o obligation_n of_o it_o be_v vanish_v into_o smoke_n and_o that_o the_o bond_n which_o so_o many_o wise_a man_n think_v be_v make_v of_o iron_n be_v less_o than_o straw_n yea_o further_o can_v good_a pope_n antilogia_fw-la pope_n cardinal_n ossatus_n ep._n 87._o ad_fw-la d._n de_fw-fr ville-roy_n suarez_n adv_fw-la sect_n aug._n l._n 6._o c._n 4._o s_o 14_o etc._n etc._n 6._o s_o 22_o 24._o azorius_fw-la i●st_fw-la moral_a part_n 1._o l_o 8._o c._n 13._o see_v the_o jansenian_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n abbot_n antilogia_fw-la clement_n the_o viii_o suggest_a to_o you_o as_o he_o do_v to_o the_o king_n of_o france_n tie_v by_o the_o bond_n of_o a_o sacred_a oath_n to_o the_o queen_n of_o england_n that_o your_o oath_n be_v make_v to_o a_o heretic_n but_o you_o stand_v bind_v against_o she_o and_o her_o succcessor_n in_o another_o oath_n to_o god_n and_o to_o the_o pope_n four_o what_o be_v his_o majesty_n the_o better_a for_o your_o subscription_n to_o his_o due_a supremacy_n whereas_o many_o of_o you_o hold_v that_o when_o the_o pope_n have_v depose_v he_o no_o obedience_n be_v due_a unto_o he_o yea_o that_o then_o ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la he_o become_v a_o tyrant_n and_o may_v be_v deal_v with_o as_o such_o a_o one_o and_o consequent_o be_v slay_v by_o a_o private_a man_n suarez_n defence_n fid_fw-we cathol_n l._n 6._o c._n 4._o norson_n ubi_fw-la supra_fw-la will_v you_o plead_v your_o fidelity_n sect._n 5_o and_o zeal_n in_o serve_v and_o defend_v of_o our_o prince_n 7._o see_v p._n 7._o and_o even_o the_o religion_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o sacrifice_v your_o blood_n and_o fortune_n for_o his_o majesty_n 1._o with_o what_o confidence_n can_v this_o be_v plead_v by_o you_o when_o the_o whole_a college_n of_o your_o jesuit_n in_o london_n say_v 45._o mr._n baxter_n key_n for_o cath._n c._n 45._o that_o they_o will_v rather_o promote_v the_o cut_n off_o of_o the_o king_n majesty_n than_o hinder_v it_o lest_o they_o the_o puritan_n shall_v make_v use_n of_o his_o extremity_n to_o any_o advantage_n nor_o be_v we_o ignorant_a who_o it_o be_v that_o have_v of_o late_o be_v convict_v of_o rejoice_v at_o that_o unsavage_a butchery_n 2._o for_o shame_n do_v not_o say_v you_o be_v unanimous_o so_o be_v it_o so_o in_o ireland_n ibid._n in_o two_o letter_n to_o arch_n b._n laud_v extant_a in_o print_n introduc_fw-la p._n 102_o 112._o vide_fw-la bax._n ibid._n no_o bishop_n bedle_n will_v assure_v we_o his_o majesty_n be_v with_o the_o great_a part_n of_o ireland_n as_o to_o their_o heart_n and_o conscience_n king_n but_o at_o the_o pope_n discretion_n and_o that_o in_o ireland_n the_o pope_n have_v another_o kingdom_n far_o great_a in_o number_n then_o his_o majesty_n and_o as_o he_o have_v heretofore_o signify_v to_o the_o lord_n justice_n and_o council_n which_o since_o be_v justify_v by_o themselves_o in_o print_n constant_o direct_v and_o guide_v by_o the_o order_n of_o the_o new_a congregation_n de_fw-fr propaganda_fw-la fide_fw-la late_o erect_v at_o rome_n 3._o what_o reason_n do_v some_o of_o you_o give_v why_o you_o shall_v be_v quiet_a under_o his_o majesty_n dominion_n even_o this_o because_o you_o be_v not_o able_a to_o manage_v a_o war_n against_o he_o pareus_n in_o th._n 22._o qu._n 13._o art_n 2._o non_fw-la licet_fw-la eye_v tol●rare_fw-la talem_fw-la regem_fw-la bell._n l._n 5._o de_fw-fr paul_n c._n 7._o s_o 3._o and_o again_o they_o be_v oblige_v not_o to_o suffer_v he_o s_o probatur_fw-la they_o be_v bind_v to_o deprive_v he_o of_o his_o dominion_n bull._n pauli_n 5._o cont_n hen._n 8._o yea_o it_o be_v meritorious_a of_o eternal_a life_n say_v card._n commons_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o pareus_n thus_o banne_n the_o faithful_a papist_n in_o england_n and_o saxony_n be_v to_o be_v excuse_v that_o they_o do_v not_o free_v themselves_o from_o the_o power_n of_o superior_n nor_o make_v war_n against_o they_o because_o common_o they_o be_v not_o strong_a enough_o to_o manage_v these_o war_n and_o great_a danger_n hang_v over_o they_o be_v they_o then_o strong_a enough_o not_o to_o rebel_n will_v be_v unexcusable_a but_o that_o which_o without_o doubt_n you_o plead_v with_o great_a confidence_n sect._n 6_o 4._o pag._n 4._o be_v that_o if_o all_o the_o receive_v canon_n of_o the_o church_n be_v search_v not_o one_o can_v be_v find_v to_o testify_v the_o shed_n of_o blood_n simple_o on_o the_o account_n of_o religion_n in_o answer_n to_o this_o i_o shall_v return_v you_o the_o word_n of_o one_o of_o your_o approve_a general_n council_n the_o four_o at_o lateran_n under_o innocent_a the_o three_o as_o binius_fw-la and_o other_o of_o your_o own_o record_n it_o where_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n they_o set_v down_o their_o catholic_n faith_n two_o article_n of_o which_o be_v 1._o that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v save_v out_o of_o their_o universal_a church_n and_o 2._o that_o the_o bread_n and_o wine_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n be_v transubstantiate_a into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n the_o appearance_n remain_v and_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n they_o say_v we_o excommunicate_a and_o anathematise_v every_o heresy_n extol_v itself_o against_o this_o holy_a orthodox_n catholic_n faith_n which_o we_o have_v before_o expon_v condemn_v all_o heretic_n by_o what_o name_n soever_o they_o be_v call_v and_o be_v condemn_v let_v they_o be_v leave_v to_o the_o present_a secular_a power_n or_o their_o bailiff_n to_o be_v punish_v the_o clergy_n be_v first_o degrade_v of_o their_o order_n and_o let_v the_o good_n of_o such_o condemn_v once_o be_v confiscate_v if_o they_o be_v layman_n but_o if_o they_o be_v clergyman_n let_v they_o be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n whence_o they_o have_v their_o stipend_n and_o those_o that_o be_v find_v notable_a only_o by_o suspicion_n if_o they_o do_v not_o by_o congruous_a purgation_n demonstrate_v their_o innocency_n according_a to_o the_o consideration_n of_o the_o suspicion_n and_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o person_n let_v they_o be_v smite_v with_o the_o sword_n of_o anathema_n and_o avoid_v by_o all_o man_n till_o they_o have_v give_v sufficient_a satisfaction_n and_o if_o they_o remain_v a_o year_n excommunicate_a let_v they_o then_o be_v condemn_v as_o heretic_n and_o let_v the_o secular_a power_n in_o what_o office_n soever_o be_v admonish_v and_o persuade_v and_o if_o necessary_a compel_v by_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n that_o as_o they_o will_v be_v repute_v and_o account_v believer_n so_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o faith_n they_o take_v a_o oath_n public_o that_o they_o will_v study_v in_o good_a earnest_n according_a to_o their_o power_n to_o exterminate_v all_o that_o be_v by_o the_o church_n denote_v heretic_n from_o the_o country_n subject_n to_o their_o jurisdiction_n so_o that_o when_o any_o one_o shall_v be_v take_v into_o spiritual_a or_o temporal_a power_n he_o shall_v by_o his_o oath_n make_v good_a this_o chapter_n but_o if_o the_o temporal_a lord_n be_v require_v or_o admonish_v by_o the_o church_n shall_v neglect_v to_o purge_v his_o country_n of_o heretical_a defilement_n let_v he_o by_o the_o metropolitan_a and_o comprovincial_a bishop_n be_v tie_v by_o the_o bond_n of_o excommunication_n and_o if_o he_o refuse_v to_o satisfy_v within_o a_o year_n let_v it_o be_v signify_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o he_o from_o thenceforth_o may_v denounce_v his_o vassal_n absolve_v from_o his_o fidelity_n and_o may_v expose_v his_o country_n to_o be_v seize_v on_o by_o catholic_n who_o root_a out_o the_o heretic_n may_v possess_v it_o without_o contradiction_n and_o may_v keep_v it_o in_o the_o purity_n of_o faith_n save_v the_o right_a of_o the_o principal_a lord_n so_o be_v it_o that_o he_o make_v no_o hindrance_n hereabout_o and_o oppose_v not_o any_o impediment_n and_o the_o same_o law_n be_v to_o be_v observe_v with_o they_o that_o be_v not_o principal_a lord_n and_o the_o catholic_n that_o take_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n shall_v set_v themselves_o to_o the_o root_n out_o of_o the_o heretic_n shall_v enjoy_v the_o same_o indulgence_n and_o holy_a privilege_n which_o be_v grant_v to_o those_o that_o go_v to_o the_o relief_n of_o the_o holy_a land_n moreover_o we_o decree_v that_o the_o believer_n receiver_n defender_n and_o favourer_n of_o heretic_n shall_v be_v excommunicate_a firm_o decree_a that_o after_o any_o such_o be_v note_v by_o excommunication_n if_o he_o refuse_v to_o satisfy_v within_o a_o year_n he_o shall_v from_o thenceforth_o be_v ipso_fw-la jure_fw-la infamous_a and_o may_v not_o be_v admit_v into_o public_a office_n or_o council_n or_o to_o the_o choice_n of_o such_o nor_o to_o bear_v
say_v that_o from_o after_o the_o time_n of_o their_o convention_n all_o novelty_n must_v be_v date_v then_o can_v not_o socinianism_n anabaptism_n presbyterianisme_n be_v esteem_v novelty_n by_o the_o doctor_n for_o he_o acknowledge_v they_o to_o have_v be_v within_o the_o time_n of_o these_o four_o council_n nor_o be_v our_o author_n ignorant_a of_o this_o for_o speak_v of_o the_o appeal_n of_o dr._n hammond_n to_o the_o three_o first_o century_n or_o the_o four_o general_a council_n he_o thus_o paraphrase_v it_o 311._o pag._n 311._o where_o by_o submission_n to_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n he_o mean_v only_o to_o the_o bare_a decision_n of_o these_o council_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n not_o oblige_v himself_o also_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o those_o father_n who_o flourish_v in_o the_o time_n of_o these_o four_o council_n and_o sit_v in_o they_o he_o go_v on_o and_o tell_v we_o sect._n 8_o that_o the_o doctor_n do_v this_o which_o he_o never_o do_v not_o out_o of_o a_o voluntary_a liberality_n ibid._n ibid._n but_o because_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n oblige_v he_o wherein_o it_o be_v say_v that_o such_o person_n to_o who_o queen_n elizabeth_n shall_v give_v authority_n to_o execute_v any_o jurisdiction_n spiritual_a shall_v not_o judge_v any_o matter_n or_o cause_n to_o be_v heresy_n but_o only_o such_o as_o heretofore_o have_v be_v determine_v to_o be_v heresy_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o canonical_a scripture_n or_o by_o the_o first_o four_o general_n council_n which_o argument_n run_v thus_o if_o no_o person_n authorize_v by_o queen_n elizabeth_n to_o execute_v any_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n must_v adjudge_v any_o matter_n to_o be_v heresy_n which_o be_v not_o determine_v to_o be_v so_o by_o the_o first_o four_o general_n council_n then_o be_v dr._n pierce_v oblige_v to_o fix_v the_o time_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o downward_o till_o the_o four_o general_n council_n inclusive_o as_o that_o distinct_a measure_n of_o time_n after_o which_o only_a whatever_a dctrine_n be_v broach_v ought_v in_o his_o opinion_n to_o be_v esteem_v novelty_n but_o verum_fw-la prius_fw-la ergo_fw-la true_o sir_n you_o yourself_o when_o you_o write_v it_o may_v think_v the_o inference_n valid_a but_o no_o man_n else_o now_o can_v he_o come_v next_o to_o propound_v some_o question_n the_o shrewd_a way_n of_o argue_v when_o dexterous_o manage_v and_o the_o first_o bring_v the_o doctor_n to_o this_o great_a absurdity_n to_o acknowledge_v sect._n 9_o 21._o pag._n 21._o with_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o fellow-protestants_a that_o scripture_n alone_o be_v the_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o second_o to_o acknowledge_v what_o we_o general_o do_v that_o no_o authority_n on_o earth_n oblige_v to_o internal_a assent_n shrewd_a conclusion_n usher_v in_o with_o a_o train_n of_o blunt_a dilemma_n your_o three_o question_n shall_v be_v consider_v in_o answer_v the_o twelve_o section_n of_o your_o last_o chapter_n four_o he_o ask_v what_o answer_n the_o doctor_n will_v make_v to_o god_n for_o abuse_v scripture_n 25._o pag._n 25._o ans_fw-fr he_o will_v plead_v not_o guilty_a but_o how_o can_v that_o be_v object_n when_o he_o pretend_v to_o prove_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o the_o english_a reformation_n because_o the_o doctrine_n impose_v upon_o they_o be_v novelty_n and_o from_o the_o beginning_n it_o be_v not_o so_o whereas_o he_o shall_v have_v evince_v that_o it_o be_v contrary_a that_o be_v the_o import_n of_o our_o saviour_n word_n reply_n rep._n the_o doctor_n will_v have_v little_a cause_n to_o fear_v his_o doom_n if_o no_o better_a plea_n can_v be_v bring_v against_o he_o for_o i_o pray_v you_o tell_v i_o do_v he_o not_o either_o confront_v the_o evidence_n of_o scripture_n against_o you_o as_o in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o transubstantiation_n and_o communion_n in_o one_o kind_n forbid_v marriage_n or_o the_o intent_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o rather_o of_o god_n himself_o as_o in_o the_o restraint_n of_o scripture_n from_o the_o vulgar_a or_o three_o tell_v you_o express_o that_o you_o oppose_v the_o verdict_n of_o god_n word_n as_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o divorce_n and_o prayer_n in_o a_o unknown_a tongue_n second_o when_o you_o confess_v that_o the_o thing_n define_v by_o your_o council_n be_v only_o such_o as_o be_v always_o matter_n of_o faith_n 241._o pag._n 241._o and_o convey_v to_o we_o by_o the_o general_a practice_n of_o the_o church_n be_v it_o not_o enough_o to_o show_v our_o innocency_n in_o not_o accept_v they_o for_o such_o because_o ab_fw-la initio_fw-la non_fw-la fuit_fw-la sic_fw-la especial_o when_o three_o you_o know_v we_o hold_v that_o in_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v all_o one_o with_o we_o to_o be_v praeter_fw-la scripturam_fw-la and_o to_o be_v contra_fw-la 25._o pag._n 25._o but_o you_o ridiculous_o add_v that_o he_o shall_v have_v cite_v such_o scripture_n as_o these_o s._n peter_n &_o his_o successor_n never_o have_v nor_o aught_o to_o have_v any_o supremacy_n of_o jurisdiction_n etc._n etc._n which_o here_o i_o bound_v myself_o to_o do_v when_o you_o can_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o the_o doctor_n be_v oblige_v to_o do_v so_o or_o that_o the_o scripture_n anywhere_o say_v that_o the_o trent_n council_n definition_n be_v to_o be_v receive_v as_o a_o rule_n of_o faith_n the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v transubstantiate_v it_o be_v unlawful_a to_o give_v the_o scripture_n to_o layman_n to_o peruse_v the_o english_a church_n be_v guilty_a of_o formal_a schism_n and_o such_o like_a stuff_n which_o you_o pretend_v to_o deduce_v from_o scripture_n last_o sect._n 10_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o father_n cry_v out_o against_o innovation_n 27._o pag._n 27._o and_o therefore_o can_v be_v think_v to_o have_v introduce_v any_o answ_n presbyterian_o cry_v out_o of_o innovation_n by_o bishop_n the_o greek_a church_n and_o the_o reform_v condemn_v the_o romanist_n as_o a_o innovator_n the_o arrian_n the_o nicene_n father_n therefore_o it_o can_v reasonable_o be_v think_v that_o any_o of_o these_o be_v innovator_n by_o mr._n c._n chap._n iu._n mr._n cs._n mistake_v sect._n 1_o his_o first_o argument_n from_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o universal_a bishop_n to_o hinder_v schism_n consider_v sect._n 2._o his_o second_o argument_n from_o the_o presbyterian_o sect._n 3_o the_o doctor_n first_o argument_n from_o mark_n 10.42_o defend_v sect._n 4._o his_o second_o from_o rev._n 21.14_o sect._n 5._o his_o three_o from_o gal._n 2._o sect._n 6._o his_o argument_n from_o the_o notion_n of_o a_o head_n strengthen_v sect._n 7_o 8_o 9_o a_o further_a evidence_n of_o the_o no_o necessity_n of_o such_o a_o head_n sect._n 10._o the_o first_o novelty_n sect._n 1_o of_o which_o his_o church_n stand_v charge_v by_o the_o doctor_n be_v the_o usurpation_n of_o their_o pope_n from_o which_o usurpation_n he_o tell_v he_o our_o church_n have_v separate_v 1._o cap._n 4._o s_o 1._o but_o whereas_o he_o will_v make_v he_o moreover_o to_o assert_v that_o this_o authority_n be_v never_o acknowledge_v in_o the_o church_n till_o the_o time_n of_o boniface_n and_o further_o that_o we_o have_v not_o separate_v from_o any_o authority_n if_o any_o be_v exercise_v by_o the_o former_a pope_n during_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n he_o deal_v disingenuous_o with_o the_o doctor_n in_o who_o no_o footstep_n of_o this_o assertion_n can_v be_v find_v albeit_o it_o be_v a_o great_a and_o evident_a truth_n but_o whereas_o he_o will_v make_v he_o further_a to_o affirm_v of_o the_o whole_a heap_n of_o roman_a novelty_n that_o there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o they_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n he_o do_v more_o gross_o and_o palpable_o abuse_v he_o only_o that_o he_o may_v make_v room_n for_o those_o citation_n which_o otherwise_o will_v have_v be_v evident_o impertinent_a and_o may_v seem_v to_o fight_v against_o the_o doctor_n sermon_n when_o he_o be_v only_o beat_v that_o man_n of_o clout_n which_o himself_o have_v make_v nay_o dr._n pierce_n evident_o acknowledge_v that_o some_o of_o their_o heresy_n may_v be_v derive_v from_o origen_n tertullian_n etc._n etc._n so_o that_o our_o author_n which_o be_v a_o bad_a omen_n stumble_v at_o the_o threshold_n build_v his_o whole_a fabric_n on_o a_o mistake_n and_o confute_v only_o what_o himself_o have_v fancy_v not_o what_o the_o doctor_n have_v assert_v well_o then_o that_o which_o he_o have_v to_o do_v if_o he_o will_v contradict_v his_o assertion_n be_v to_o show_v not_o whither_o the_o pope_n praecede_v challenge_v a_o supremacy_n of_o jurisdiction_n but_o whither_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v acknowledge_v of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n as_o a_o universal_a head_n as_o one_o who_o have_v receive_v from_o the_o beginning_n a_o power_n of_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o universal_a church_n now_o in_o return_v a_o answer_n to_o what_o be_v
relation_n be_v make_v by_o he_o who_o interest_n it_o be_v to_o say_v so_o and_o who_o be_v manifest_o ambitious_a to_o lord_n it_o over_o god_n heritage_n that_o this_o edict_n be_v make_v st._n hilary_n not_o be_v hear_v to_o plead_v for_o himself_o that_o it_o be_v extort_a from_o a_o young_a prince_n and_o ignorant_a of_o these_o thing_n and_o last_o that_o this_o edict_n have_v very_o little_a or_o no_o authority_n in_o follow_v time_n for_o divers_a council_n a_o thing_n which_o contain_v the_o height_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n and_o which_o leo_n for_o bad_a to_o hilary_n be_v call_v without_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o pope_n in_o divers_a part_n and_o city_n of_o france_n to_o define_v weighty_a matter_n of_o faith_n and_o discipline_n thus_o we_o find_v it_o in_o synodis_fw-la agathensi_fw-la prima_fw-la epaunensi_fw-la aureliensibus_fw-la aliquot_fw-la turonensi_fw-la matisconensi_fw-la avernensi_fw-la and_o many_o more_o all_o affirm_v that_o they_o come_v together_o solo_n deo_fw-la authore_fw-la ac_fw-la moderatore_fw-la and_o by_o the_o permission_n or_o command_v of_o the_o emperor_n whither_o he_o be_v gothus_n burgundus_fw-la vel_fw-la francus_n and_o thus_o i_o hope_v mr._n c._n have_v little_a cause_n to_o brag_v of_o the_o weight_n this_o testimony_n carry_v with_o it_o especial_o see_v be_v it_o all_o as_o true_a as_o gospel_n yet_o do_v it_o not_o reach_v to_o a_o jus_o divinum_fw-la and_o so_o be_v mutable_a as_o for_o the_o decree_n of_o pope_n zosimus_n innocent_n and_o siricius_n 56._o mr._n c._n p._n 56._o so_o trivial_a and_o impertinent_a that_o he_o dare_v not_o transcribe_v they_o i_o refer_v he_o to_o the_o answer_n of_o dr._n field_n sutlivius_n 20._o pag._n 527._o cont_n bellar._n l._n 2._o de_fw-la summo_fw-la pontif._n turon_n 11._o can._n 20._o and_o chamier_n make_v to_o they_o long_o ago_o nor_o will_v i_o trouble_v myself_o with_o what_o the_o council_n of_o toledo_n hold_v an._n dom._n 633._o or_o that_o of_o tours_n 570._o see_v these_o council_n concern_v only_a france_n or_o spain_n and_o moreover_o this_o last_o say_v only_o this_o that_o it_o will_v be_v a_o piece_n of_o arrogance_n or_o presumption_n for_o a_o priest_n who_o by_o mr._n cr._n be_v make_v a_o bishop_n to_o contradict_v the_o determination_n of_o the_o apostle_n see_v 4._o can._n 4._o and_o the_o first_o speak_v of_o the_o use_n of_o trine_n immersion_n tell_v we_o how_o that_o leander_n bishop_n of_o spain_n desire_v the_o advice_n of_o pope_n gregory_n who_o answer_v that_o in_o such_o matter_n as_o these_o it_o be_v indifferent_a what_o custom_n they_o observe_v yet_o to_o avoid_v any_o symbolise_n with_o heretic_n one_o simple_a immersion_n may_v be_v more_o convenient_a this_o now_o be_v call_v his_o precept_n and_o this_o for_o the_o reason_n assign_v by_o the_o pope_n they_o agree_v to_o follow_v but_o yet_o that_o the_o pope_n decree_n be_v receive_v as_o law_n in_o france_n or_o spain_n neither_o do_v these_o citation_n prove_v nor_o have_v the_o assertion_n in_o it_o any_o thing_n of_o truth_n the_o great_a st._n sect._n 2_o basil_n with_o who_o he_o next_o assault_v we_o will_v do_v he_o little_a service_n 57_o ep._n 52._o mr._n c._n p._n 57_o for_o his_o word_n be_v only_o these_o it_o seem_v convenient_a to_o we_o to_o write_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o consider_v our_o affair_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o give_v his_o advice_n or_o acquaint_v we_o with_o his_o mind_n and_o sentence_n not_o interpose_v the_o judgement_n of_o his_o decree_n as_o mr._n c._n have_v render_v it_o and_o because_o it_o be_v difficult_a to_o send_v any_o thence_o by_o a_o common_a synodical_a decree_n that_o he_o use_v his_o own_o authority_n which_o in_o the_o other_o case_n he_o can_v not_o have_v shall_v choose_v man_n fit_a to_o under_o go_v the_o trouble_n of_o the_o journey_n 534._o the_o greek_a run_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d pag._n 534._o and_o also_o able_a by_o their_o meekness_n and_o dexterity_n not_o by_o power_n delegated_a from_o the_o pope_n to_o correct_v the_o perverse_a and_o thwart_a spirit_n among_o we_o fit_o temper_v and_o dispense_n their_o word_n and_o have_v all_o thing_n with_o they_o that_o be_v do_v at_o ariminum_n to_o the_o rescind_n of_o what_o be_v there_o do_v or_o rather_o that_o so_o what_o be_v there_o do_v by_o force_n and_o violence_n may_v be_v rescind_v and_o have_v not_o dr._n field_n cause_n to_o say_v that_o the_o allege_v of_o this_o testimony_n show_v they_o have_v very_o little_a conscience_n that_o allege_v it_o for_o these_o be_v the_o circumstance_n of_o basils_n epistle_n whereof_o let_v the_o reader_n judge_n basil_n write_v to_o athanasius_n advise_v he_o that_o the_o only_a way_n to_o settle_v thing_n put_v out_o of_o order_n in_o the_o eastern_a church_n by_o the_o arrian_n be_v the_o procure_n of_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o western_a bishop_n if_o it_o be_v possible_a to_o entreat_v they_o to_o interpose_v themselves_o for_o that_o undoubted_o the_o ruler_n will_v great_o regard_v and_o much_o reverence_n the_o credit_n of_o their_o multitude_n and_o people_n everywhere_o will_v follow_v they_o without_o gainsay_v but_o see_v this_o which_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v desire_v will_v not_o in_o likelihood_n easy_o be_v obtain_v he_o wish_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n may_v be_v induce_v to_o send_v some_o of_o good_a discretion_n and_o moderation_n who_o by_o gentle_a admonition_n may_v pacify_v the_o mind_n of_o man_n and_o may_v have_v all_o thing_n in_o readiness_n that_o concern_v the_o arimine_n council_n so_o that_o this_o epistle_n make_v very_o much_o against_o their_o opinion_n that_o allege_v it_o for_o he_o prefer_v and_o rather_o wish_v a_o particular_a council_n than_o this_o interposition_n of_o the_o pope_n alone_o if_o there_o have_v be_v any_o hope_n of_o a_o council_n beside_o those_o who_o the_o pope_n be_v to_o send_v be_v not_o to_o proceed_v judicial_o and_o authoritative_o but_o by_o entreaty_n and_o gentle_a admonition_n to_o pacify_v the_o mind_n o●_n man_n and_o therefore_o here_o be_v nothing_o of_o visit_v the_o eastern_a church_n and_o void_a the_o act_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n by_o way_n of_o setence_n the_o argument_n take_v from_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n sect._n 3_o 58._o mr_n c._n p._n 57_o 58._o viz_o that_o no_o decree_n shall_v be_v establish_v in_o the_o church_n without_o not_o the_o assent_n as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o but_o the_o opinion_n and_o the_o advice_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n upon_o which_o ground_n the_o new_a confession_n of_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a be_v argue_v of_o nutley_n which_o he_o confirm_v from_o socrates_n hist_o eccles_n l._n 2._o ca●_n 5._o athanas_n apol._n sec_fw-la sozom._n hist_o eccles_n l._n 3._o c._n 9_o valentinian_n &c_n &c_n be_v full_o answer_v by_o the_o author_n of_o the_o review_n of_o the_o trent_n council_n 155._o pag_n 155._o who_o tell_v he_o that_o all_o that_o can_v be_v prove_v hence_o be_v that_o a_o general_n council_n can_v be_v hold_v unless_o they_o viz._n the_o pope_n be_v call_v to_o it_o and_o this_o say_v he_o appear_v from_o the_o application_n which_o pope_n julius_n make_v of_o it_o when_o he_o complain_v that_o he_o be_v not_o call_v to_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n where_o athanasius_n be_v condemn_v charge_v they_o for_o that_o with_o the_o breach_n of_o that_o canon_n 13._o lib._n 2_o ●_o 13._o julius_n say_v socrates_n in_o his_o letter_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o council_n of_o antioch_n tell_v they_o they_o have_v offend_v against_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n in_o that_o they_o call_v he_o not_o to_o the_o council_n for_o as_o much_o as_o the_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n forbid_v the_o make_n of_o any_o decrce_n in_o the_o church_n without_o the_o opinion_n and_o advice_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o sozomen_n say_v 9_o lib._n 3._o c._n 9_o that_o julius_n write_v to_o the_o bishop_n which_o be_v assemble_v at_o antioch_n accuse_v they_o for_o seek_v after_o novelty_n contrary_a to_o the_o faith_n and_o belief_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o church_n for_o not_o call_v he_o to_o the_o council_n forasmuch_o as_o by_o virtue_n of_o a_o law_n make_v in_o behalf_n of_o the_o dignity_n of_o priest_n all_o decree_n viz._n make_v in_o a_o general_n council_n be_v invalid_a which_o be_v enact_v without_o the_o opinion_n and_o advice_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n and_o of_o this_o pope_n julius_n have_v reason_n to_o complain_v consider_v that_o a_o council_n can_v be_v term_v general_n nor_o any_o decree_n and_o canon_n make_v to_o bind_v the_o whole_a church_n catholic_n unless_o all_o those_o which_o ought_v to_o be_v present_a especial_o the_o patriarch_n be_v lawful_o call_v
spain_n and_o ignorant_a of_o the_o thing_n do_v and_o of_o the_o truth_n conceal_v to_o the_o intent_n that_o he_o may_v request_v exaembiret_n to_o be_v injust_o repose_v in_o his_o bishopric_n from_o which_o he_o be_v just_o depose_v stephen_n hereupon_o with_o his_o bishop_n communicate_v with_o he_o and_o so_o as_o much_o as_o in_o they_o lie_v restore_v he_o to_o his_o former_a bishopric_n cyprian_n condemn_v the_o false_a and_o ill_a deal_n of_o basilides_n and_o reprove_v also_o the_o negligence_n of_o stephen_n that_o suffer_v himself_o so_o easy_o to_o be_v mislead_v tax_v he_o and_o such_o as_o consent_v with_o he_o for_o communicate_v with_o such_o wicked_a one_o show_v that_o they_o be_v partaker_n of_o their_o sin_n and_o that_o they_o violate_v the_o canon_n of_o the_o church_n which_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n and_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o world_n yea_o even_a cornelius_n the_o predecessor_n of_o this_o stephen_n have_v consent_v on_o to_o wit_n that_o man_n so_o defile_v with_o idolatry_n as_o martialis_n and_o basilides_n be_v shall_v be_v receive_v to_o penitency_n but_o be_v keep_v from_o all_o ecclesiastical_a honour_n these_o be_v the_o circumstance_n of_o cyprian_n epistle_n wherein_o he_o relate_v the_o proceed_n against_o basilides_n and_o martialis_n just_o put_v from_o their_o office_n and_o dignity_n and_o the_o inconsiderate_a course_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n hasty_o communicate_v with_o they_o whereby_o we_o may_v see_v how_o wise_o and_o advise_o our_o adversary_n urge_v cyprian_a to_o prove_v that_o in_o ancient_a time_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v power_n to_o restore_v such_o bishop_n to_o their_o place_n again_o as_o be_v depose_v by_o other_o for_o thus_o they_o must_v reason_v from_o this_o place_n of_o cyprian_a if_o they_o will_v make_v any_o use_n of_o it_o basilides_n and_o martialis_n just_o put_v from_o their_o office_n fly_v to_o stephen_n bishop_n of_o rome_n hope_v by_o his_o mean_n to_o procure_v the_o reverse_v of_o that_o which_o be_v do_v against_o they_o he_o with_o such_o as_o adhear_v to_o he_o though_o they_o can_v not_o restore_v they_o to_o their_o place_n yet_o communicate_v with_o they_o cyprian_a offend_v herewith_o charge_v basilides_n with_o execrable_a wickedness_n for_o abuse_v stephen_n and_o misinform_v he_o and_o stephen_n with_o intolerable_a negligence_n and_o unexcusable_a violation_n of_o the_o canon_n for_o partake_v with_o such_o wicked_a person_n and_o wish_v all_o his_o brethren_n and_o colleague_n constant_o to_o hold_v on_o their_o course_n against_o they_o notwithstanding_o the_o fail_n of_o stephen_n and_o his_o adherent_n therefore_o the_o ancient_a bishop_n of_o rome_n restore_v to_o their_o place_n such_o as_o be_v judicial_o depose_v by_o other_o and_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o the_o father_n to_o have_v power_n and_o authority_n so_o to_o do_v which_o kind_n of_o reason_v be_v like_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o this_o chapter_n that_o be_v evident_o weak_a but_o happy_o you_o will_v say_v why_o do_v not_o cyprian_n tell_v they_o that_o the_o pope_n have_v not_o power_n to_o restore_v they_o answ_n do_v he_o yet_o not_o sufficient_o in_o advise_v they_o to_o hold_v on_o their_o course_n against_o they_o which_o sure_o he_o will_v not_o have_v do_v have_v he_o acknowledge_v any_o such_o power_n in_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o this_o will_v have_v be_v to_o contradict_v lawful_a authority_n 2._o st._n cyprian_n be_v discontent_v with_o the_o proceed_n of_o these_o bishop_n in_o go_v to_o stephen_n so_o far_o distant_a which_o sure_o he_o will_v not_o have_v be_v if_o he_o have_v think_v he_o to_o have_v have_v such_o a_o universal_a jurisdiction_n as_o our_o author_n plead_v for_o no_o certain_o these_o word_n savour_v strong_o of_o what_o st._n cyprian_n tell_v we_o of_o fortunatus_n and_o felicissimus_n their_o appeal_n to_o rome_n when_o condemn_v in_o africa_n ep._n 55._o ad_fw-la cornelium_n that_o it_o be_v just_a and_o equal_a that_o every_o one_o cause_n shall_v be_v there_o hear_v where_o the_o crime_n be_v commit_v and_o that_o it_o behove_v not_o their_o bishop_n over_o who_o they_o be_v set_v to_o run_v about_o as_o these_o do_v to_o rome_n but_o to_o plead_v their_o cause_n there_o where_o their_o accuser_n and_o their_o witness_n may_v be_v have_v unless_o a_o few_o desperate_a wretch_n will_v think_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o africa_n be_v less_o viz._n then_o that_o to_o which_o they_o run_v what_o evasion_n be_v make_v against_o this_o say_n of_o cyprian_a by_o bellarmine_n and_o pamelius_n be_v take_v off_o by_o chamier_n in_o the_o fourteen_o book_n pent._n de_fw-fr oec_fw-fr pent._n the_o second_o chapter_n from_o the_o six_o section_n to_o the_o two_o and_o twenty_o another_o negative_a argument_n we_o have_v from_o pope_n victor_n excommunicate_v the_o asian_a bishop_n sect._n 11_o as_o differ_v from_o he_o in_o the_o celebration_n of_o the_o eastern_a festival_n now_o here_o say_v he_o it_o be_v not_o impute_v to_o victor_n by_o irenaeus_n or_o polycrates_n that_o he_o exercise_v a_o usurp_a authority_n over_o bishop_n not_o subject_a to_o he_o ergo_fw-la he_o have_v authority_n over_o these_o asian_a bishop_n answ_n this_o say_v mr._n chillingworth_n be_v to_o suppose_v that_o excommunication_n be_v a_o act_n or_o argument_n or_o sign_n of_o power_n and_o authority_n in_o the_o party_n excommunicate_v over_o the_o party_n excommunicate_v whereas_o it_o be_v undeniable_o evident_a out_o of_o the_o church_n story_n that_o it_o be_v often_o use_v by_o inferior_n upon_o superior_n and_o by_o equal_n upon_o equal_n if_o the_o equal_v or_o inferior_n think_v their_o equal_n or_o superior_n do_v any_o thing_n which_o deserve_v it_o 2._o say_v he_o when_o they_o admonish_v he_o that_o for_o so_o small_a a_o cause_n he_o shall_v not_o cut_v off_o so_o many_o province_n from_o the_o body_n of_o the_o church_n what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o esteem_v that_o as_o a_o small_a and_o unsufficient_a cause_n of_o excommunication_n which_o victor_n and_o his_o adherent_n think_v great_a and_o sufficient_a and_o consequent_o that_o victor_n and_o his_o party_n declare_v that_o to_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o necessity_n which_o they_o think_v not_o so_o and_o where_o be_v then_o their_o conformity_n to_o what_o he_o add_v further_a out_o of_o cyprian_a sect._n 12_o de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la that_o our_o lord_n build_v his_o church_n upon_o one_o person_n etc._n etc._n the_o same_o most_o learned_a author_n return_v this_o answer_n that_o whosoever_o will_v but_o read_v over_o that_o book_n shall_v find_v most_o certain_o and_o undoubted_o that_o he_o speak_v not_o in_o that_o book_n of_o st._n peter_n headship_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n as_o our_o author_n phansi_v but_o of_o the_o head_n original_a and_o first_o beginning_n of_o pastoral_n commission_n which_o he_o make_v appear_v by_o lay_v down_o the_o principal_a and_o most_o material_a circumstance_n of_o this_o book_n write_v upon_o occasion_n of_o the_o schism_n of_o the_o novatian_o the_o first_o thing_n that_o occur_v in_o the_o whole_a discourse_n of_o the_o book_n be_v the_o observation_n of_o the_o malice_n of_o satan_n in_o find_v out_o schism_n and_o heresy_n to_o subvert_v the_o faith_n 2._o he_o show_v that_o this_o so_o fall_v out_o because_o man_n return_v not_o back_o to_o the_o first_o origen_n of_o truth_n because_o they_o seek_v not_o the_o head_n nor_o keep_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o heavenly_a master_n which_o if_o a_o man_n will_v consider_v there_o will_v be_v no_o need_n of_o many_o argument_n but_o the_o truth_n without_o any_o great_a search_n will_v offer_v itself_o unto_o he_o for_o therefore_o do_v christ_n when_o he_o be_v to_o lay_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n say_v especial_o to_o peter_n thou_o be_v peter_n and_o upon_o this_o rock_n will_v i_o build_v my_o church_n and_o again_o after_o the_o resurrection_n feed_v my_o sheep_n because_o though_o rise_v again_o from_o the_o dead_a he_o give_v like_o power_n to_o all_o the_o apostle_n when_o he_o say_v as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o send_v i_o you_o who_o sin_n you_o remit_v etc._n etc._n joh._n 20.21_o 23._o yet_o he_o will_v by_o speak_v especial_o to_o one_o and_o by_o appoint_v one_o chair_n show_v what_o unity_n shall_v be_v in_o the_o church_n the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n say_v st._n cyprian_n be_v undoubted_o the_o same_o that_o st._n peter_n be_v equal_a in_o honour_n and_o power_n but_o therefore_o do_v christ_n in_o the_o first_o place_n give_v or_o at_o least_o promise_n to_o give_v especial_o or_o particular_o to_o one_o that_o apostolic_a commission_n which_o he_o mean_v also_o to_o give_v to_o the_o rest_n that_o he_o may_v thereby_o show_v that_o the_o church_n must_v be_v one_o and_o that_o there_o
must_v be_v but_o one_o episcopal_a chair_n in_o the_o world_n all_o the_o apostle_n say_v cyprian_n be_v pastor_n but_o the_o flock_n of_o christ_n be_v but_o one_o which_o they_o be_v to_o feed_v with_o unanimous_a consent_n there_o be_v but_o one_o body_n of_o the_o church_n one_o spirit_n one_o hope_n of_o our_o call_v one_o lord_n one_o faith_n one_o baptism_n one_o god_n this_o unity_n all_o man_n must_v endeavour_v to_o keep_v especial_o bishop_n that_o they_o may_v make_v it_o appear_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o episcopal_a commission_n in_o the_o christian_a church_n cujus_fw-la à_fw-la singulis_fw-la in_o solidum_fw-la pars_fw-la tenetur_fw-la whereof_o every_o one_o indifferent_o and_o in_o equal_a sort_n have_v his_o part_n here_o be_v nothing_o that_o prove_v the_o universality_n of_o the_o papal_a power_n but_o this_o place_n most_o plain_o overthrow_v it_o for_o cyprian_n teach_v that_o christ_n mean_v to_o give_v equal_a power_n and_o authority_n to_o all_o his_o apostle_n and_o the_o reason_n why_o intend_v no_o more_o to_o one_o than_o to_o the_o rest_n yet_o he_o more_o especial_o direct_v his_o speech_n to_o one_o than_o to_o the_o rest_n be_v only_o to_o show_v that_o there_o must_v be_v a_o unity_n in_o the_o church_n which_o he_o settle_v in_o that_o begin_n with_o one_o from_o he_o he_o proceed_v to_o the_o rest_n not_o mean_v that_o the_o rest_n shall_v receive_v any_o thing_n from_o he_o but_o that_o from_o himself_o immediate_o they_o shall_v receive_v that_o in_o the_o second_o place_n which_o he_o have_v first_o and_o that_o they_o shall_v receive_v the_o same_o commission_n together_o with_o he_o into_o which_o he_o be_v put_v first_o that_o they_o may_v know_v he_o to_o be_v the_o first_o of_o their_o company_n for_o it_o can_v consist_v say_v he_o either_o with_o truth_n with_o the_o opinion_n of_o st._n cyprian_n or_o of_o our_o adversary_n themselves_o that_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n receive_v their_o ministerial_a power_n from_o peter_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o he_o as_o to_o a_o head_n and_o absolute_a commander_n over_o they_o see_v he_o say_v express_o that_o they_o be_v the_o same_o that_o peter_n be_v and_o equal_a to_o he_o both_o in_o honour_n and_o power_n and_o beside_o both_o in_o this_o book_n and_o in_o many_o other_o place_n he_o be_v wont_a to_o derive_v the_o original_n of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n from_o the_o intrusion_n of_o man_n into_o place_n without_o due_a admittance_n and_o allowance_n of_o they_o that_o in_o a_o kind_n of_o coherent_a concord_n rule_v and_o govern_v the_o church_n and_o never_o from_o the_o resistance_n of_o one_o supreme_a commander_n set_v over_o all_o well_o then_o to_o the_o place_n object_v upon_o that_o one_o viz._n st._n peter_n he_o build_v his_o church_n we_o answer_v in_o the_o word_n of_o st._n jerome_n precede_v the_o church_n be_v build_v upon_o st._n peter_n but_o yet_o true_a it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n be_v do_v upon_o other_o and_o the_o strength_n of_o the_o church_n equal_o rest_v upon_o all_o but_o you_o will_v say_v that_o st._n jerome_n there_o assert_n that_o among_o the_o twelve_o one_o be_v choose_v 2._o cont._n jovin_n l._n 2._o that_o a_o head_n be_v constitute_v the_o occasion_n of_o schism_n may_v be_v take_v away_o which_o seem_v to_o advance_v st._n peter_n above_o the_o rest_n answ_n not_o as_o to_o any_o thing_n of_o authority_n for_o then_o st._n i_o will_v contradict_v himself_o when_o he_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v found_v ex_fw-la aequo_fw-la upon_o the_o twelve_o so_o that_o his_o meaning_n be_v that_o before_o the_o apostle_n be_v send_v over_o the_o world_n and_o whilst_o they_o make_v up_o one_o particular_a company_n for_o better_a order_n sake_n he_o be_v choose_v head_n that_o so_o thing_n may_v be_v do_v communi_fw-la concilio_fw-la and_o there_o may_v be_v no_o schism_n between_o they_o 2._o he_o tell_v we_o this_o be_v give_v to_o peter_n quia_fw-la petrus_n crat_fw-mi senior_fw-la which_o be_v but_o a_o personal_a advantage_n can_v be_v apply_v to_o the_o benefit_n of_o the_o romanist_n who_o be_v to_o prove_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n and_o not_o only_o the_o primacy_n of_o st._n peter_n not_o to_o mention_v that_o these_o word_n be_v not_o st._n jeroms_n but_o jovinian_o and_o speak_v not_o of_o a_o plenitude_n of_o power_n but_o only_a primacy_n with_o many_o other_o answer_n which_o you_o have_v in_o dr._n ham._n sch._n this_fw-mi p._n 238._o and_o for_o the_o second_o citation_n from_o st._n cyprian_n sect._n 13_o that_o he_o who_o forsake_v the_o chair_n of_o st._n peter_n upon_o which_o the_o church_n be_v found_v can_v think_v that_o he_o be_v in_o the_o church_n 3._o lib._n 12_o de_fw-la oec_fw-la pont._n c._n 5._o s_o 3._o he_o may_v have_v learn_v from_o chamier_n that_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a gloss_n creep_v into_o the_o text_n and_o not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o some_o edition_n but_o if_o it_o can_v deserve_v a_o answer_n the_o learned_a dr._n field_n will_v inform_v he_o that_o st._n cyprian_n by_o that_o chair_n intend_v not_o one_o particular_a chair_n appoint_v for_o a_o general_n teacher_n of_o all_o the_o world_n to_o sit_v in_o but_o the_o joint_a commission_n unity_n and_o consent_n of_o all_o pastor_n which_o be_v and_o must_v be_v such_o as_o if_o they_o do_v all_o sit_v in_o one_o chair_n which_o sense_n of_o one_o chair_n found_v upon_o peter_n you_o may_v find_v in_o the_o same_o cyprian_a ad_fw-la universam_fw-la plebem_fw-la 8_o lib._n ep_v 8_o where_o he_o urge_v the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o chair_n not_o to_o show_v that_o obedience_n be_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o to_o show_v that_o against_o they_o that_o be_v lawful_o place_v in_o a_o bishopric_n with_o consent_v allowance_n of_o the_o pastor_n at_o unity_n other_o may_v not_o be_v admit_v and_o that_o they_o who_o by_o any_o other_o mean_n get_v into_o place_n of_o ministry_n then_o by_o consent_v allowance_n of_o the_o pastor_n at_o unity_n among_o themselves_o be_v in_o truth_n and_o indeed_o no_o bishop_n at_o all_o and_o this_o be_v a_o sufficient_a answer_n to_o that_o passage_n of_o optatus_n cont_n sect._n 14_o 193._o this_o will_v have_v perfect_a truth●_n in_o it_o say_v dr._n ham._n sch_n dis_fw-fr p._n 192_o have_v it_o be_v speak_v of_o any_o other_o plantation_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o chair_n of_o st._n john_n in_o asia_n &c_n &c_n see_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o chair_n do_v evident_o signify_v the_o church_n bring_v down_o by_o succession_n from_o the_o apostle_n which_o the_o donatist_n can_v not_o pretend_v to_o see_v he_o exact_o scan_v the_o whole_a place_n p._n 190_o 192_o 193._o parman_n l._n 2._o at_o rome_n a_o chair_n be_v place_v for_o st._n peter_n to_o the_o end_n that_o unity_n may_v be_v preserve_v of_o all_o and_o for_o fear_v the_o other_o apostle_n shall_v challenge_v to_o themselves_o each_o one_o his_o particular_a chair_n and_o sure_o you_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o answer_v return_v to_o the_o passage_n by_o the_o incomparable_a chillingworth_n viz._n the_o truth_n be_v the_o donatist_n have_v set_v up_o at_o rome_n a_o bishop_n of_o their_o faction_n not_o with_o intent_n to_o make_v he_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o of_o that_o church_n in_o particular_a now_o optatus_n go_v upon_o st._n cyprian_n above_o mention_v ground_n of_o one_o bishop_n in_o one_o church_n prove_v they_o schismatick●_n for_o so_o do_v and_o he_o prove_v it_o by_o this_o argument_n st._n peter_n be_v first_o bishop_n of_o rome_n neither_o do_v the_o apostle_n attribute_v to_o themselves_o each_o one_o his_o particular_a chair_n understand_v in_o that_o city_n for_o in_o other_o place_n other_o have_v chair_n beside_o st._n peter_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v a_o schismatic_a who_o against_o that_o one_o single_a ch●ir_n erect_v another_o understand_v as_o before_o in_o that_o place_n make_v another_o bishop_n of_o that_o diocese_n beside_o he_o who_o be_v lawful_o elect_v to_o it_o we_o pass_v on_o to_o st._n chrysostome_n from_o who_o two_o sentence_n be_v press_v for_o the_o service_n of_o the_o pope_n but_o to_o the_o first_o i_o return_v a_o non_fw-fr est_fw-fr inventus_fw-la after_o twice_o read_v the_o three_o hom._n cite_v by_o he_o 1.4_o he_o in_o act._n apost_n c._n 1.4_o i_o can_v find_v nothing_o like_o the_o word_n produce_v in_o the_o second_o be_v evident_a prevarication_n for_o have_v tell_v we_o that_o these_o word_n follow_v i_o show_v his_o special_a care_n he_o have_v of_o st._n peter_n he_o add_v how_o then_o be_v it_o may_v some_o say_v that_o st._n james_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o this_o i_o answer_n say_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d he_o that_o be_v
be_v a_o prejudice_n to_o that_o because_o a_o primate_n or_o patriarch_n by_o the_o notation_n of_o each_o word_n be_v one_o that_o have_v none_o over_o he_o in_o respect_n of_o authority_n or_o power_n and_o so_o be_v absolute_o first_fw-mi in_o his_o own_o diocese_n this_o suppose_v a_o supreme_a power_n in_o one_o must_v needs_o prejudge_v that_o as_o much_o as_o a_o monarchick_a power_n in_o one_o be_v incompatible_a with_o a_o aristocracy_n and_o this_o be_v the_o very_a reason_n why_o pelagius_n and_o gregory_n refuse_v it_o because_o they_o shall_v have_v wrong_v the_o rest_n of_o the_o patriarch_n in_o assume_v it_o three_o def._n p._n 406._o now_o whether_o his_o assert_v this_o primacy_n sect._n 3_o or_o our_o accuse_v and_o condemn_v it_o as_o a_o novelty_n whether_o his_o proof_n or_o we_o be_v more_o conclude_v let_v the_o reader_n judge_n i_o be_o content_a to_o refer_v it_o to_o his_o conscience_n as_o our_o author_n do_v we_o come_v now_o to_o discuss_v the_o safety_n of_o admit_v this_o supremacy_n and_o 1._o 81._o mr._n c._n p._n 81._o mr._n c._n assure_v we_o that_o whilst_o such_o a_o primacy_n pure_o spiritual_a be_v acknowledge_v which_o for_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n be_v never_o so_o much_o as_o hear_v of_o the_o church_n here_o be_v never_o tear_v in_o piece_n with_o schism_n nor_o poison_a with_o heresy_n 59_o just_a vindic_n p._n 58_o 59_o answ_n bishop_n brumhal_o can_v tell_v you_o no_o saxon_a english_a or_o british_a king_n ever_o make_v any_o oblige_a solemn_a formal_a acknowledgement_n of_o their_o submission_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n that_o the_o pope_n power_n in_o england_n be_v of_o courtesy_n not_o duty_n that_o former_a king_n be_v as_o tart_a and_o vehement_a against_o he_o as_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o with_o this_o only_a difference_n that_o they_o endeavour_v to_o draw_v the_o people_n out_o of_o the_o pope_n claw_n at_o home_n and_o he_o think_v it_o more_o expedient_a to_o cast_v the_o pope_n over_o the_o british_a sea_n once_o for_o all_o and_o if_o so_o your_o very_a supposition_n will_v give_v you_o the_o lie_n unless_o you_o will_v sink_v down_o to_o queen_n mary_n day_n second_o if_o they_o be_v not_o tear_v in_o piece_n with_o schism_n yet_o through_o your_o bloodthirsty_a tyranny_n they_o be_v tear_v in_o piece_n for_o schism_n burn_v for_o heresy_n that_o be_v for_o the_o plain_a evident_a truth_n of_o the_o gospel_n by_o your_o ignorance_n brand_v with_o the_o odious_a name_n of_o schismatical_a and_o heretical_a tenant_n three_o i_o pray_v you_o tell_v i_o be_v there_o no_o protestant_n in_o queen_n mary_n day_n do_v none_o suffer_v before_o her_o day_n when_o you_o suppose_v the_o supremacy_n of_o antichrist_n agnize_v how_o many_o righteous_a soul_n be_v butcher_v by_o you_o in_o prosecution_n of_o your_o sanguinary_a article_n against_o poor_a protestant_n how_o many_o pile_n be_v build_v in_o queen_n mary_n day_n to_o sacrifice_v their_o life_n upon_o to_o your_o rage_n and_o malice_n and_o dare_v you_o be_v so_o bloody_a against_o those_o who_o be_v neither_o schismatic_n nor_o heretic_n and_o what_o wonder_n be_v it_o that_o you_o have_v no_o schismatic_n etc._n etc._n when_o to_o be_v such_o be_v the_o sure_a way_n to_o have_v no_o be_v and_o they_o can_v find_v no_o other_o answer_n to_o their_o argument_n but_o fire_n and_o faggot_n yea_o when_o the_o light_n be_v withhold_v from_o they_o that_o so_o they_o may_v not_o see_v the_o truth_n you_o go_v on_o and_o tell_v we_o ibid._n ibid._n the_o throne_n be_v never_o in_o the_o least_o danger_n upon_o that_o account_n never_o be_v a_o sword_n draw_v for_o or_o against_o it_o answ_n very_o good_a if_o prince_n will_v crouch_v to_o his_o holiness_n 〈…〉_o nun_n rex_fw-la anglorum_fw-la n●●er_fw-la vass●llus_fw-la est_fw-la ●t_z ut_fw-la 〈…〉_o di●_n 〈…〉_o be_v his_o vassal_n suffer_v he_o to_o drain_v their_o kingdom_n rob_v and_o beggar_v their_o subject_n exhaust_v their_o dominion_n he_o will_v not_o arm_v their_o subject_n against_o they_o dethrone_v they_o or_o seek_v their_o ruin_n but_o if_o they_o once_o offer_v to_o withstand_v his_o tyranny_n question_v his_o intolerable_a encroachment_n can_v be_v content_a tha●_n their_o subject_n wealth_n shall_v be_v convert_v into_o st._n p●●●●_n patrimony_n then_o must_v they_o be_v sacrifice_n to_o papal_a 〈◊〉_d witness_v that_o terrible_a and_o unparallelled_a excommunication_n and_o interdiction_n of_o england_n the_o deprivation_n of_o henry_n the_o eight_o publish_v at_o dunkirk_n witness_v the_o bull_n of_o anathematization_n and_o deprivation_n by_o pius_n the_o five_o against_o queen_n elizabeth_n and_o all_o her_o adherent_n absolve_v all_o her_o subject_n from_o their_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n without_o so_o much_o as_o a_o admonition_n precede_v witness_v the_o pope_n negotiation_n with_o the_o english_a spanish_a french_a etc._n etc._n to_o have_v queen_n elizabeth_n take_v away_o by_o murder_n publish_v at_o rome_n by_o hieronymo_n culena_n secretary_n to_o the_o cardinal_n alexandrino_n in_o the_o time_n and_o with_o the_o privilege_n of_o sixtus_n the_o five_o witness_v the_o legantine_n authority_n give_v to_o sander_n and_o the_o hollow_a banner_n send_v with_o he_o and_o allen_n two_o romish_a priest_n to_o countenance_v the_o earl_n of_o desmond_n in_o his_o rebellion_n the_o phoenix_n plume_v send_v to_o terowen_n to_o encourage_v he_o likewise_o in_o his_o rebellion_n and_o a_o plenary_a indulgence_n for_o he_o and_o all_o his_o assistant_n from_o clement_n the_o eight_o last_o witness_v the_o two_o brief_n send_v by_o the_o same_o pope_n to_o exclude_v king_n james_n from_o the_o inheritance_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n unless_o he_o will_v take_v a_o oath_n to_o promote_v the_o roman_n catholic_n interest_n witness_v the_o rebellious_a tenant_n of_o your_o english_a seminary_n the_o many_o treason_n and_o rebellion_n in_o the_o time_n of_o qu._n elizabeth_n and_o king_n james_n all_o which_o you_o may_v see_v in_o the_o reverend_a bishop_n bramhal_o pag._n 136_o 137_o 138._o of_o his_o repli_v so_o that_o you_o do_v in_o effect_n say_v it_o be_v safe_a for_o his_o majesty_n to_o admit_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n for_o otherwise_o he_o may_v expect_v the_o absolution_n of_o his_o subject_n from_o their_o obedience_n a_o spanish_a invasion_n a_o gunpowder_n treason_n or_o some_o other_o mischievous_a enterprise_n of_o the_o romish_a emissary_n to_o take_v away_o his_o life_n you_o tell_v we_o further_o sect._n 4_o that_o the_o king_n of_o france_n account_v it_o one_o of_o the_o most_o sparkle_a jewel_n in_o their_o crown_n ibid._n ibid._n that_o they_o call_v themselves_o the_o elder_a and_o most_o devote_a son_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n the_o acknowledge_v the_o spiritual_a primacy_n of_o the_o chief_a pastor_n they_o find_v a_o great_a honour_n and_o defence_n in_o they_o then_o many_o army_n will_v because_o it_o preserve_v peace_n and_o unity_n in_o the_o kingdom_n by_o subdue_a their_o mind_n and_o captivate_a their_o conscience_n to_o faith_n and_o obedience_n answ_n the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o same_o supremacy_n in_o the_o turk_n that_o civil_a pope_n who_o gape_v for_o the_o universal_a monarchy_n will_v be_v as_o great_a a_o expedient_a for_o peace_n and_o unity_n let_v our_o author_n make_v the_o inference_n second_o why_o may_v we_o not_o deny_v that_o this_o peace_n and_o unity_n be_v not_o to_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n see_v as_o our_o author_n have_v it_o in_o another_o case_n in_o so_o many_o place_n both_o they_o be_v not_o where_o it_o be_v and_o be_v where_o it_o be_v not_o as_o under_o the_o turk_n dominion_n etc._n etc._n three_o we_o tell_v you_o that_o his_o majesty_n of_o france_n do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n 200._o from._n pag._n 190_o to_o 200._o as_o it_o be_v undeniable_o evince_v by_o bishop_n bramhal_o in_o his_o just_a vindication_n last_o you_o fall_v to_o divine_a that_o without_o such_o a_o authority_n all_o our_o preach_n and_o law_n will_v prove_v but_o shake_a bulwark_n for_o support_a monarchy_n answ_n very_o likely_a for_o to_o be_v sure_a if_o your_o priest_n and_o jesuit_n man_n bear_v for_o the_o subversion_n of_o government_n be_v permit_v 20._o hoc_fw-la genn_n hominum_fw-la natum_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la interitum_fw-la christianae_n reipub_fw-la be_v the_o prediction_n of_o the_o university_n of_o paris_n and_o it_o be_v confess_v this_o be_v their_o business_n to_o set_v all_o on_o fire_n by_o john_n brown_n a_o roman_a priest_n prin_fw-mi introd_a p._n 202._o n._n 82._o s_o 20._o you_o will_v never_o leave_v your_o rebellious_a attempt_n and_o treacherous_a conspiracy_n till_o you_o have_v bring_v we_o into_o new_a confusion_n and_o build_v your_o nest_n upon_o our_o ruin_n again_o we_o be_v tell_v how_o earnest_o roman_a catholic_n here_o have_v
protest_v their_o renounce_v any_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o least_o degree_n of_o temporal_a power_n or_o jurisdiction_n as_o of_o right_a belong_v to_o the_o pope_n over_o any_o subject_n of_o his_o majesty_n sect._n 5_o 138._o see_v b._n bram_n p._n 137_o 138._o answ_n we_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o campian_n be_v ask_v if_o the_o pope_n shall_v send_v force_n against_o the_o queen_n whether_o he_o will_v take_v part_n with_o the_o queen_n or_o the_o pope_n open_o profess_v and_o testify_v under_o his_o hand_n that_o he_o will_v stand_v for_o the_o pope_n yea_o that_o his_o fellow_n be_v examine_v in_o like_a manner_n either_o refuse_v to_o answer_n or_o give_v such_o ambiguous_a and_o prevaricatory_a answer_n that_o some_o ingenuous_a catholic_n begin_v to_o suspect_v that_o they_o foster_v some_o tteachery_n that_o the_o college_n or_o seminary_n of_o english_a priest_n at_o rome_n at_o rheims_n at_o douai_n hold_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v supreme_a authority_n and_o most_o full_a power_n over_o the_o whole_a world_n yea_o even_o in_o temporal_a matter_n now_o whether_o you_o have_v change_v these_o opinion_n or_o no_o we_o know_v not_o 2._o how_o long_o you_o will_v hold_v to_o this_o whether_o after_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o contrary_a whether_o you_o will_v esteem_v his_o majesty_n to_o have_v any_o subject_n when_o absolve_v by_o the_o pope_n from_o his_o obedience_n whether_o your_o acknowledgement_n be_v not_o with_o mental_a reservation_n and_o whether_o your_o intent_n be_v not_o as_o in_o queen_n elizabeth_n time_n it_o be_v acknowledge_v by_o some_o of_o your_o own_o party_n by_o reconcile_n in_o confession_n to_o absolve_v every_o one_o in_o particular_a from_o all_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n and_o obedience_n to_o the_o supreme_a power_n ib._n see_v b._n bram._n ib._n and_o whether_o you_o do_v not_o yet_o think_v that_o faith_n with_o heretic_n may_v be_v break_v when_o the_o good_a of_o the_o catholic_n cause_n require_v it_o may_v be_v doubt_v and_o therefore_o you_o be_v too_o hasty_a in_o conclude_v that_o you_o acknowledge_v mere_o a_o pure_a spiritual_a authority_n in_o the_o pope_n have_v you_o the_o confidence_n to_o affirm_v it_o of_o your_o italian_a papist_n or_o jesuit_n but_o to_o yield_v what_o you_o so_o confident_o assert_v and_o so_o weak_o prove_v you_o catechise_v we_o thus_o be_v this_o now_o dishonourable_a be_v it_o unsafe_a answ_n both_o to_o who_o answ_n all_o king_n and_o people_n the_o whole_a church_n of_o god_n you_o reply_v catholic_n prince_n protest_v against_o this_o opinion_n either_o of_o dishonour_n or_o danger_n answ_n no_o such_o thing_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o all_o kingdom_n and_o republic_n of_o the_o roman_a communion_n do_v exempt_v themselves_o from_o this_o obedience_n to_o and_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n or_o at_o least_o plead_v for_o it_o when_o they_o have_v occasion_n 7._o just_a vind._n c._n 7._o as_o be_v irrefragable_o evince_v by_o bishop_n bramhal_o yea_o particular_o when_o pope_n adrian_n will_v have_v have_v hinemare_n a_o man_n condemn_v by_o three_o french_a synod_n for_o a_o turbulent_a person_n and_o depose_v send_v to_o he_o to_o receive_v justice_n the_o king_n of_o france_n ask_v he_o what_o hell_n vomit_v out_o this_o law_n what_o bottomless_a pit_n have_v belch_v it_o forth_o yea_o further_o when_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n be_v summon_v by_o the_o pope_n to_o the_o trent_n council_n he_o find_v that_o all_o thing_n be_v do_v at_o rome_n rather_o than_o at_o trent_n do_v not_o only_o contemn_v all_o these_o papal_a decree_n but_o command_v his_o bishop_n to_o depart_v and_o leave_v the_o council_n whether_o they_o be_v summon_v by_o the_o pope_n 2._o be_v they_o not_o ever_o and_o anon_o cry_v out_o of_o grievance_n complain_v of_o the_o pope_n usurpation_n and_o tyranny_n exhaust_v the_o wealth_n of_o their_o kingdom_n prodigality_n of_o indulgence_n etc._n etc._n and_o be_v it_o safe_a to_o admit_v that_o power_n which_o have_v such_o pernicious_a attendant_n that_o power_n which_o albeit_o it_o shall_v be_v pure_o spiritual_a be_v use_v almost_o everywhere_o in_o ordine_fw-la ad_fw-la temporalia_fw-la to_o enlarge_v the_o pope_n coffer_n and_o the_o like_a 2._o 162._o see_v b._n ●am_n just_a vind._n p._n 161_o 162._o they_o have_v more_o reason_n to_o acknowledge_v he_o then_o we_o they_o profess_v he_o to_o have_v be_v their_o patriarch_n but_o it_o be_v beyond_o all_o question_n he_o have_v no_o title_n to_o be_v we_o 3._o they_o may_v protest_v against_o a_o truth_n esteem_v that_o not_o to_o be_v dishonourable_a which_o indeed_o be_v so_o as_o be_v a_o disclaim_n of_o that_o power_n and_o care_n over_o god_n church_n which_o he_o have_v commit_v to_o they_o suffer_v a_o proud_a ambitious_a prelate_n to_o rob_v they_o of_o the_o service_n they_o owe_v to_o christ_n and_o tyrannize_v it_o over_o the_o bishop_n they_o shall_v protect_v and_o the_o faith_n they_o be_v style_v defender_n of_o but_o he_o proceed_v if_o only_o say_v he_o to_o the_o dissenter_n from_o catholic_n religion_n this_v be_v dishonourable_a nero_n and_o diocletian_n have_v reason_n on_o their_o side_n when_o they_o persecute_v a_o religion_n dishonourable_a and_o dangerous_a to_o the_o roman_a empire_n answ_n but_o how_o will_v it_o appear_v to_o have_v be_v so_o be_v it_o begin_v and_o uphold_v by_o treason_n rebellion_n continual_a bloodshed_n all_o manner_n of_o vice_n and_o wickedness_n as_o the_o roman_n evident_o be_v and_o be_v why_o forsooth_o neither_o st._n peter_n nor_o any_o other_o apostle_n or_o bishop_n but_o be_v as_o to_o their_o spiritual_a authority_n independent_a on_o the_o emperor_n answ_n but_o what_o of_o all_o this_o do_v such_o intolerable_a extortion_n excessive_a rapine_n accompany_v the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o succeed_a bishop_n as_o do_v accompany_v this_o power_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v there_o the_o same_o reason_n to_o resist_v a_o power_n prove_v to_o be_v derive_v from_o god_n by_o sign_n and_o wonder_n yea_o and_o manifest_o tend_v to_o the_o confirm_a obedience_n to_o high_a power_n and_o to_o resist_v a_o evident_a usurpation_n and_o a_o tyrannical_a yoke_n unjust_o put_v upon_o the_o neck_n of_o those_o that_o be_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o nature_n and_o the_o constitution_n of_o the_o kingdom_n free_a from_o it_o which_o be_v find_v to_o tend_v to_o the_o subversion_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o the_o enslave_v of_o the_o kingdom_n and_o be_v not_o the_o spiritual_a power_n of_o bishop_n regulate_v by_o christian_a emperor_n albeit_o it_o be_v whole_o independent_a upon_o pagan_n and_o what_o if_o we_o acknowledge_v a_o pure_a spiritual_a authority_n in_o our_o bishop_n over_o their_o presbyter_n and_o diocese_n to_o ordain_v sect._n 6_o excommunicate_a make_v order_n for_o decency_n etc._n etc._n we_o acknowledge_v such_o a_o power_n in_o the_o pope_n over_o the_o suburbicarian_a province_n may_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o canterbury_n as_o well_o require_v upon_o this_o account_n to_o exercise_v a_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o bishop_n in_o spain_n france_n etc._n etc._n and_o say_v it_o will_v not_o be_v dishonourable_a to_o they_o to_o suffer_v such_o a_o usurpation_n as_o the_o pope_n exercise_v over_o we_o because_o it_o be_v pure_o spiritual_a else_o will_v it_o be_v so_o to_o suffer_v their_o own_o bishop_n to_o exercise_v the_o like_a authority_n be_v there_o any_o statute_n that_o hinder_v the_o exercise_n of_o this_o authority_n by_o our_o bishop_n be_v it_o contrary_a to_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n right_o understand_v do_v not_o bishop_n bramhal_v tell_v you_o 1._o that_o this_o oath_n be_v compose_v only_o by_o papist_n 293._o rep._n p._n 289_o 290_o 291_o 292_o 293._o no_o protestant_n have_v any_o hand_n in_o it_o 2._o that_o they_o be_v zealous_a in_o defend_v the_o doctrine_n contain_v in_o it_o 3._o that_o there_o be_v no_o supremacy_n ascribe_v to_o his_o majesty_n in_o that_o oath_n but_o mere_o political_a and_o such_o as_o be_v essential_o annex_v to_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o every_o sovereign_a prince_n 4._o the_o addition_n of_o spiritual_a cause_n be_v thus_o to_o be_v understand_v 1._o either_o by_o himself_o or_o by_o fit_a substitute_n who_o be_v ecclesiastical_a person_n 2._o of_o these_o cause_n which_o be_v handle_v in_o the_o exterior_a court_n not_o in_o the_o inner_a court_n of_o conscience_n 3._o that_o as_o for_o other_o ecclesiastical_a cause_n his_o power_n consist_v in_o see_v that_o ecclesiastical_a person_n do_v their_o duty_n 4._o that_o this_o be_v plain_o evince_v to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o oath_n from_o the_o 37._o art_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n 5._o that_o the_o same_o power_n be_v exercise_v by_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n in_o sicily_n a_o lay_v chancellor_n in_o the_o court_n
because_o what_o the_o council_n have_v define_v be_v evident_a in_o scripture_n therefore_o do_v we_o believe_v it_o and_o if_o we_o shall_v find_v that_o in_o any_o article_n they_o dissent_v from_o scripture_n we_o shall_v in_o that_o as_o much_o oppose_v they_o as_o we_o do_v you_o our_o appeal_n then_o to_o they_o be_v not_o as_o rule_n but_o as_o conformable_a to_o the_o rule_n and_o so_o we_o shall_v to_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n itself_o have_v it_o be_v as_o orthodox_n as_o they_o but_o i_o hope_v we_o shall_v not_o thence_o make_v they_o guide_v or_o their_o decree_n rule_n of_o our_o faith_n though_o that_o i_o may_v not_o be_v mistake_v i_o allow_v the_o four_o first_o a_o pre-eminence_n above_o the_o ensue_a ecumenical_a council_n be_v there_o any_o such_o because_o from_o their_o nearness_n to_o the_o apostolical_a time_n they_o have_v great_a advantage_n of_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o apostle_n mind_n and_o practice_n but_o then_o the_o pre-eminence_n we_o grant_v they_o above_o other_o be_v derive_v from_o the_o probability_n of_o their_o consonancy_n with_o that_o which_o we_o avow_v to_o be_v infallible_a we_o appeal_v therefore_o to_o the_o four_o first_o general_a council_n not_o because_o we_o think_v it_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o conform_v our_o belief_n to_o they_o but_o ex_fw-la abundanti_fw-la to_o show_v you_o that_o shall_v we_o appeal_v to_o the_o church_n as_o you_o will_v have_v we_o that_o in_o the_o most_o pure_a and_o uncorrupted_a age_n its_o belief_n carry_v a_o exact_a harmony_n with_o we_o so_o that_o be_v the_o church_n judge_n as_o it_o be_v not_o the_o primitive_a church_n will_v stand_v for_o we_o and_o this_o be_v all_o we_o mean_v in_o our_o appeal_n to_o the_o four_o first_o general_a council_n how_o impertinent_a then_o be_v mr._n cressys_n dilemma_n 8._o p._n 1._o s_o 8._o that_o if_o dr._n pierce_n submit_v to_o the_o four_o first_o general_a council_n not_o because_o of_o their_o inherent_a authority_n but_o because_o he_o judge_v their_o decision_n conformable_a to_o god_n express_v word_n than_o he_o delude_v we_o and_o with_o presbyterian_o independent_o etc._n etc._n make_v scripture_n alone_o the_o rule_n of_o reformation_n how_o do_v he_o delude_v you_o do_v he_o ever_o deny_v this_o what_o delusion_n be_v it_o to_o tell_v you_o that_o i_o hold_v what_o i_o hold_v but_o then_o you_o say_v dr._n pierce_n must_v make_v scripture_n his_o only_a rule_n what_o then_o nothing_o but_o this_o that_o dr._n pierce_n affirm_v what_o he_o affirm_v and_o what_o absurdity_n be_v that_o a_o shrewd_a dilemma_n that_o force_v dr._n pierce_n to_o believe_v what_o he_o do_v believe_v in_o the_o next_o place_n when_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o beside_o reason_n our_o ecclesiastical_a synod_n bishop_n or_o parliamnt_n be_v admit_v as_o guide_n of_o our_o faith_n you_o do_v but_o evidence_n by_o your_o impute_v to_o we_o what_o we_o hold_v not_o you_o can_v confute_v what_o we_o hold_v for_o sect._n 4_o we_o assert_v therefore_o that_o reason_n alone_o be_v and_o can_v be_v our_o guide_n which_o we_o demonstrate_v because_o reason_n alone_o be_v our_o judge_n in_o all_o case_n for_o i_o either_o have_v reason_n for_o my_o belief_n whatever_o it_o be_v or_o i_o have_v not_o if_o the_o latter_a than_o my_o belief_n be_v 1._o irrational_a for_o my_o belief_n must_v be_v irrational_a when_o i_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v and_o as_o irrational_a so_o 2._o altogether_o uncertain_a and_o its_o object_n may_v as_o well_o be_v a_o falsehood_n as_o a_o truth_n because_o if_o i_o have_v no_o reason_n why_o i_o believe_v it_o true_a then_o have_v i_o no_o certainty_n but_o it_o may_v be_v false_a for_o the_o only_a certainty_n i_o can_v have_v that_o my_o belief_n be_v not_o false_a be_v because_o i_o have_v rational_a ground_n to_o evidence_n it_o true_a which_o when_o remove_v what_o certainty_n can_v i_o have_v that_o i_o do_v not_o err_v but_o if_o the_o former_a that_o be_v if_o whatsoever_o i_o believe_v or_o assent_v to_o i_o do_v it_o because_o my_o reason_n judge_v it_o a_o truth_n than_o reason_n be_v my_o judge_n and_o guide_v in_o whatsoever_o i_o believe_v which_o be_v the_o proposition_n to_o be_v prove_v and_o this_o be_v easy_o confirm_v and_o illustrate_v by_o a_o few_o particular_a consideration_n as_o when_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o i_o be_o bind_v to_o embrace_v any_o religion_n at_o all_o i_o bring_v my_o reason_n to_o judge_v which_o after_o it_o have_v examine_v the_o weight_n and_o evidence_n of_o the_o argument_n suggest_v to_o it_o and_o find_v they_o valid_a determine_v and_o judge_n that_o i_o ought_v to_o own_o some_o religion_n after_o this_o my_o next_o enquiry_n be_v among_o the_o various_a kind_n of_o religion_n profess_v in_o the_o world_n which_o be_v the_o true_a one_o here_o again_o have_v examine_v all_o their_o pretence_n my_o reason_n judge_v which_o be_v most_o consonant_a to_o truth_n and_o hereupon_o i_o close_o with_o the_o christian_a profession_n because_o i_o find_v their_o argument_n most_o valid_a and_o high_o satisfactory_a to_o a_o ingenuous_a and_o unprejudiced_a understanding_n and_o such_o as_o carry_v with_o they_o so_o full_a a_o evidence_n as_o that_o it_o will_v make_v all_o unbelief_n infinite_o irrational_a and_o hitherto_o as_o reason_n be_v my_o only_a guide_n so_o my_o only_a rule_n too_o for_o i_o can_v have_v no_o other_o canon_n whereby_o to_o guide_v it_o but_o it_o be_v own_o acknowledge_a law_n and_o maxim_n by_o which_o i_o examine_v the_o verity_n of_o all_o other_o rule_n and_o therefore_o can_v have_v no_o other_o rule_n whereby_o to_o judge_v see_v they_o themselves_o be_v the_o matter_n judge_v of_o and_o therefore_o when_o we_o dispute_v with_o the_o romanist_n whether_o scripture_n be_v our_o sole_a rule_n whereby_o to_o determine_v controversy_n it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v take_v absolute_o as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o other_o rule_n for_o i_o can_v never_o confute_v a_o jew_n from_o a_o text_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n nor_o a_o atheist_n or_o a_o infidel_n out_o of_o either_o testament_n but_o limited_o that_o its_o the_o sole_a rule_n whereby_o to_o determine_v controversy_n of_o faith_n among_o those_o that_o profess_v the_o christian_a religion_n in_o which_o sense_n alone_o it_o concern_v their_o dispute_n which_o be_v not_o with_o infidel_n but_o christian_n who_o have_v already_o acknowledge_v scripture_n to_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o to_o proceed_v have_v by_o embrace_v the_o christian_a religion_n receive_v a_o new_a rule_n the_o old_a guide_n may_v still_o suffice_v that_o which_o can_v guide_v i_o into_o the_o right_a way_n will_v much_o more_o guide_v i_o in_o it_o especial_o when_o its_o plain_a and_o easy_a but_o now_o christianity_n be_v profess_v and_o a_o new_a rule_n own_v my_o next_o quere_z be_v what_o party_n among_o the_o several_a pretender_n adhere_v to_o this_o rule_n and_o so_o with_o what_o church_n i_o must_v join_v here_o again_o reason_n must_v sit_v on_o the_o bench_n and_o pass_v judgement_n of_o all_o the_o church_n in_o the_o world_n which_o of_o they_o keep_v to_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o which_o swerve_v from_o it_o let_v we_o then_o first_o call_v the_o socinian_n church_n to_o the_o bar_n here_o the_o enquiry_n will_v be_v whether_o i_o may_v embrace_v any_o thing_n for_o truth_n though_o sufficient_o manifest_v to_o be_v of_o divine_a revelation_n if_o it_o seem_v to_o contradict_v or_o thwart_v my_o reason_n hereto_o reason_n itself_o must_v be_v judge_n and_o so_o the_o enquiry_n be_v whether_o it_o be_v more_o rational_a to_o believe_v a_o truth_n divine_o reveal_v that_o i_o can_v comprehend_v or_o upon_o that_o account_n to_o reject_v it_o my_o reason_n judge_v it_o most_o rational_a to_o captivate_v and_o submit_v itself_o to_o infinite_a wisdom_n and_o believe_v what_o it_o can_v comprehend_v because_o i_o and_o all_o the_o world_n beside_o do_v acknowledge_v such_o thing_n as_o transcend_v our_o comprehension_n v._o g._n a_o infinite_a extension_n of_o space_n a_o eternal_a duration_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o i_o think_v not_o their_o principle_n sufficient_a to_o explode_v a_o truth_n for_o a_o falsehood_n beside_o i_o know_v the_o divine_a knowledge_n and_o wisdom_n be_v infinite_a and_o so_o incomprehensible_a to_o any_o sinite_fw-la and_o shallow_a intellect_n and_o therefore_o that_o he_o may_v know_v and_o consequent_o reveal_v such_o matter_n which_o be_v too_o deep_a and_o too_o wide_a to_o be_v contain_v within_o the_o bound_n of_o our_o narrow_a understanding_n and_o therefore_o what_o more_o absurd_a then_o to_o measure_v the_o immensity_n of_o the_o divine_a wisdom_n by_o the_o standard_n of_o our_o imperfect_a and_o short_a apprehension_n wherefore_o we_o do_v not_o proscribe_v the_o doctrine_n impute_v to_o the_o
or_o else_o upon_o that_o account_n reject_v not_o this_o divine_a revelation_n be_v abuse_v by_o some_o to_o undermine_v our_o faith_n shall_v they_o therefore_o not_o be_v allow_v to_o be_v foundation_n of_o it_o the_o question_n be_v what_o be_v the_o sure_a guide_n of_o our_o faith_n we_o say_v pure_a and_o unprejudiced_a reason_n and_o that_o if_o we_o will_v follow_v its_o dictate_v we_o be_v in_o the_o safe_a way_n to_o happiness_n and_o though_o then_o we_o may_v err_v about_o some_o lesser_a truth_n because_o not_o perspicuous_a yet_o not_o about_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v a_o necessary_a article_n of_o faith_n but_o if_o man_n will_v not_o follow_v their_o own_o guide_n but_o force_v they_o into_o by-path_n and_o follow_v the_o blind_a guide_n of_o interest_n prejudice_n or_o passion_n than_o they_o may_v perish_v not_o because_o they_o follow_v their_o free_a reason_n but_o because_o they_o either_o stifle_v or_o violent_o divert_v they_o 4._o i_o will_v beseech_v mr._n c._n and_o his_o brethren_n to_o beware_v of_o strengthen_v the_o hand_n of_o atheist_n and_o sceptic_n whilst_o they_o endeavour_v to_o weaken_v we_o for_o beside_o the_o damage_n they_o bring_v to_o all_o religion_n it_o be_v no_o small_a one_o they_o bring_v to_o their_o own_o for_o hereby_o they_o show_v that_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n that_o a_o man_n be_v a_o papist_n he_o may_v be_v a_o atheist_n too_o and_o that_o they_o can_v build_v their_o own_o religion_n but_o upon_o the_o ruin_n of_o all_o religion_n for_o let_v i_o ask_v will_v not_o his_o exception_n become_v a_o atheist_n mouth_n and_o be_v more_o serviceable_a to_o his_o cause_n then_o to_o mr._n cressey_n what_o if_o he_o shall_v ask_v why_o do_v you_o embrace_v any_o religion_n give_v what_o account_v you_o can_v he_o will_v inquire_v what_o warrant_v you_o have_v that_o you_o be_v not_o deceive_v what_o assurance_n can_v we_o give_v he_o if_o we_o dare_v not_o credit_v our_o own_o saculty_n and_o how_o mr._n c._n who_o will_v not_o allow_v we_o to_o trust_v our_o own_o reason_n will_v answer_v he_o i_o understand_v not_o but_o i_o be_o certain_a let_v he_o reply_v what_o he_o will_v the_o doubt_n will_v still_o return_v upon_o he_o for_o if_o he_o take_v refuge_n at_o the_o church_n the_o quere_z will_v be_v how_o he_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o church_n do_v not_o deceive_v he_o and_o imagine_v he_o can_v return_v a_o answer_n yet_o unless_o he_o at_o last_o appeal_n to_o his_o reason_n it_o will_v serve_v only_o to_o give_v occasion_n to_o a_o new_a question_n but_o though_o mr._n c._n by_o his_o principle_n can_v answer_v a_o sceptic_a yet_o by_o we_o we_o may_v satisfactory_o answer_v he_o for_o i_o know_v that_o if_o my_o faculty_n be_v right_a and_o the_o common_a notion_n of_o humane_a reason_n be_v true_a that_o i_o err_v not_o and_o i_o will_v never_o desire_v great_a assurance_n that_o i_o be_o in_o the_o right_n then_o that_o my_o faculty_n be_v so_o and_o if_o the_o sceptic_a will_n rather_o reject_v all_o certainty_n then_o acknowledge_v his_o faculty_n to_o be_v true_a his_o fancy_n be_v so_o odd_a that_o upon_o the_o same_o score_n he_o may_v cast_v himself_o from_o a_o precipice_n because_o its_o possible_a he_o may_v only_o dream_v that_o he_o be_v there_o but_o let_v we_o talk_v what_o we_o will_v of_o reason_n sect._n 6_o yet_o we_o have_v as_o mr._n c._n 4._o mr._n c._n s_o 4._o will_v persuade_v we_o our_o last_o speak_v judge_n as_o well_o as_o they_o viz._n our_o ecclesiastical_a synod_n or_o bishop_n or_o parliament_n so_o that_o the_o result_n of_o all_o dispute_n must_v come_v to_o this_o whether_o the_o last_o speak_v judge_n in_o england_n or_o that_o in_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n deserve_v better_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o rely_v on_o to_o this_o 1._o have_v not_o you_o yourself_o express_o set_v down_o the_o difference_n of_o protestant_a obedience_n from_o that_o of_o papist_n unto_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n who_o word_n be_v these_o which_o we_o find_v in_o the_o thirteen_o phragraph_n of_o this_o chapter_n the_o universal_a church_n representative_a have_v a_o influence_n over_o the_o soul_n of_o man_n require_v much_o more_o than_o a_o external_a submission_n which_o yet_o be_v all_o that_o protestant_n will_v allow_v to_o the_o most_o authentic_a general_n council_n now_o what_o a_o vast_a difference_n be_v there_o between_o give_v external_a submission_n as_o we_o do_v and_o internal_a assent_n to_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o decree_n as_o you_o do_v 2._o what_o protestant_n ever_o assert_v what_o your_o church_n challenge_v that_o our_o convocation_n bishop_n or_o parliament_n be_v judge_n of_o our_o faith_n or_o when_o do_v they_o themselves_o require_v that_o upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n we_o shall_v take_v up_o our_o faith_n upon_o their_o authority_n nay_o when_o do_v they_o challenge_v any_o power_n over_o our_o mind_n and_o conscience_n do_v not_o our_o divine_n affirm_v that_o our_o internal_a action_n fall_v not_o under_o the_o verge_n or_o cognisance_n of_o any_o external_a power_n whatsoever_o whether_o ecclesiastical_a or_o temporal_a do_v we_o not_o teach_v that_o the_o end_n of_o the_o government_n in_o the_o church_n be_v to_o preserve_v its_o peace_n and_o unity_n and_o that_o whatsoever_o disturb_v not_o they_o fall_v not_o under_o the_o church_n cognizance_n and_o that_o therefore_o our_o church_n do_v not_o condemn_v or_o punish_v so_o all_o difference_n from_o she_o in_o opinion_n but_o for_o divulge_v these_o differ_a opinion_n which_o create_v schism_n and_o faction_n in_o the_o church_n who_o do_v our_o convocation_n ever_o damn_v for_o not_o internal_o receive_v their_o decree_n do_v they_o not_o leave_v every_o man_n to_o the_o liberty_n of_o his_o judgement_n and_o only_o challenge_v the_o authority_n of_o it_o which_o all_o man_n resign_v up_o to_o the_o governor_n of_o those_o sociery_n of_o which_o they_o be_v member_n they_o do_v not_o require_v that_o we_o shall_v in_o all_o thing_n believe_v as_o they_o believe_v but_o that_o we_o shall_v submit_v to_o their_o determination_n and_o not_o contradict_v they_o their_o decision_n be_v not_o obtrude_v as_o infallible_a oracle_n but_o only_o submit_v to_o in_o order_n to_o peace_n and_o unity_n which_o we_o esteem_v to_o be_v of_o a_o infinite_o great_a value_n than_o the_o propagation_n of_o any_o little_a truth_n so_o that_o their_o work_n be_v rather_o to_o silence_v then_o determine_v dispute_n or_o if_o they_o do_v positive_o determine_v they_o either_o do_v not_o then_o require_v that_o all_o shall_v positive_o believe_v their_o determination_n but_o expect_v that_o all_o shall_v so_o far_o acquiese_v therein_o as_o not_o to_o proceed_v in_o oppose_v they_o and_o so_o make_v schism_n and_o division_n incurable_a or_o if_o they_o do_v require_v a_o positive_a assent_n it_o be_v not_o upon_o pretence_n of_o any_o infallibility_n as_o your_o church_n do_v but_o because_o the_o thing_n determine_v be_v so_o evident_a in_o scripture_n as_o that_o all_o deny_v of_o it_o must_v be_v wilful_a v._o g._n they_o do_v not_o require_v we_o to_o believe_v there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n upon_o their_o authority_n but_o because_o it_o be_v express_o assert_v in_o scripture_n but_o in_o matter_n which_o scripture_n have_v leave_v doubtful_a our_o church_n permit_v her_o member_n every_o one_o to_o abound_v in_o his_o own_o sense_n because_o she_o know_v no_o way_n to_o determine_v they_o but_o by_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o scripture_n not_o have_v clear_o reveal_v they_o she_o dare_v not_o be_v so_o arrogant_a as_o positive_o to_o determine_v they_o what_o impudence_n then_o be_v it_o to_o charge_v we_o as_o if_o we_o have_v change_v the_o pope_n for_o my_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n and_o a_o general_n council_n for_o a_o national_a convocation_n and_o the_o conclave_n of_o rome_n for_o a_o parliament_n at_o london_n give_v that_o very_a authority_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o we_o take_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n when_o the_o difference_n be_v so_o infinite_o great_a between_o the_o authority_n which_o you_o give_v to_o your_o church_n and_o we_o give_v to_o we_o whereas_o mr._n c._n sect._n 7_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o fight_v against_o sectary_n with_o the_o weapon_n of_o the_o romanist_n and_o against_o romanist_n turn_v sectary_n etc._n etc._n it_o be_v a_o most_o pitiful_a and_o false_a exception_n for_o we_o accuse_v not_o sectary_n for_o not_o believe_v our_o church_n as_o the_o romanist_n accuse_v we_o for_o not_o believe_v they_o but_o for_o not_o obey_v she_o in_o thing_n lawful_a and_o separate_v from_o she_o unnecessary_o who_o ever_o urge_v they_o to_o believe_v as_o the_o church_n believe_v or_o who_o damn_v they_o for_o not_o do_v it_o there_o be_v many_o topic_n use_v to_o
who_o will_v keep_v his_o eye_n open_a be_v in_o no_o more_o danger_n of_o lose_v his_o way_n then_o in_o the_o walk_v of_o his_o own_o garden_n for_o we_o know_v the_o condition_n which_o god_n have_v make_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v clear_a and_o easy_a unless_o god_n shall_v bind_v we_o upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n full_o to_o know_v and_o believe_v article_n obscure_a and_o ambiguous_a and_o so_o damn_v man_n for_o not_o believe_v that_o the_o truth_n whereof_o they_o can_v not_o discover_v which_o be_v high_o repugnant_a both_o to_o he_o reveal_v goodness_n and_o justice_n we_o therefore_o distinguish_v between_o point_n fundamental_a and_o not_o sundamental_a those_o be_v clear_o reveal_v and_o so_o of_o a_o necessary_a belief_n to_o determine_v their_o sense_n there_o be_v no_o more_o need_n of_o a_o judge_n then_o for_o any_o other_o perspicious_a truth_n what_o need_v of_o a_o judge_n to_o decide_v whether_o scripture_n affirm_v that_o there_o be_v but_o one_o god_n that_o this_o god_n can_v lie_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v send_v by_o his_o commission_n into_o the_o world_n that_o he_o be_v crucify_v and_o rise_v again_o that_o without_o faith_n and_o obedience_n we_o can_v come_v to_o heaven_n these_o and_o such_o like_a be_v the_o truth_n we_o entitle_v fundamental_a and_o if_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o need_v a_o infallible_a judge_n then_o let_v we_o bring_v euclid_n element_n to_o the_o bar_n and_o call_v for_o a_o judge_n to_o decide_v whether_o twice_o two_o make_v four_o then_o for_o point_n not_o fundamental_a their_o belief_n be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n we_o may_v err_v about_o they_o and_o not_o err_v damnable_o and_o so_o this_o plea_n for_o a_o infallible_a judge_n be_v whole_o evacuate_v and_o with_o no_o more_o difficulty_n may_v we_o baffle_v the_o other_o take_v from_o its_o necessity_n to_o determine_v controversy_n for_o if_o any_o man_n oppose_v fundamental_a doctrine_n or_o any_o other_o evident_a truth_n our_o church_n can_v censure_v he_o without_o pretend_v to_o be_v infallible_a what_o need_v of_o a_o infallible_a judge_n to_o convict_v he_o of_o heresy_n that_o shall_v deny_v the_o resurrection_n of_o the_o dead_a which_o yet_o some_o of_o your_o own_o pope_n have_v not_o believe_v if_o some_o of_o your_o own_o historian_n may_v be_v believe_v then_o for_o doctrine_n not_o fundamental_a be_v not_o clear_o reveal_v our_o church_n do_v not_o take_v upon_o she_o to_o determine_v these_o but_o if_o any_o dispute_n arise_v about_o such_o point_n it_o be_v her_o work_n to_o silence_n and_o suppress_v they_o and_o when_o she_o give_v her_o judgement_n of_o that_o side_n she_o think_v most_o probable_a though_o she_o do_v not_o expect_v that_o all_o her_o child_n shall_v be_v so_o wise_a as_o to_o be_v of_o her_o opinion_n yet_o she_o expect_v they_o shall_v be_v so_o modest_a as_o not_o to_o contradict_v she_o which_o be_v as_o effectual_o available_a to_o end_v controversy_n as_o be_v your_o pretend_a infallibility_n now_o my_o next_o work_n must_v be_v to_o consider_v his_o argument_n for_o their_o church_n infallibility_n and_o our_o submission_n to_o it_o sect._n 10_o where_o i_o can_v but_o request_v the_o reader_n serious_o to_o consider_v upon_o what_o little_a arguing_n what_o pitiful_a sophism_n what_o strawy_a pillar_n stand_v not_o only_o the_o great_a and_o magnificent_a fabric_n of_o the_o papal_a infallibility_n and_o authority_n but_o also_o their_o whole_a faith_n religion_n and_o eternal_a salvation_n see_v they_o make_v they_o all_o to_o stand_v upon_o the_o same_o foundation_n on_o which_o stand_v their_o church_n infallibility_n so_o that_o when_o their_o weakness_n be_v discover_v all_o must_v unavoidable_o fall_v to_o proceed_v then_o his_o argument_n why_o we_o must_v stand_v to_o the_o church_n decision_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n be_v because_o in_o deut._n 17.8_o 9_o 10._o god_n command_v the_o israelite_n in_o all_o quarrel_n to_o appeal_v to_o the_o priest_n and_o levite_n and_o stand_v to_o their_o sentence_n and_o enact_v that_o the_o man_n who_o will_v do_v presumptuous_o and_o will_v not_o hearken_v to_o the_o priest_n shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n to_o pass_v by_o many_o other_o exception_n that_o may_v be_v make_v against_o this_o argument_n only_o take_v notice_n 1._o that_o this_o appeal_n be_v from_o the_o lesser_a consistory_n to_o the_o great_a sanhedrin_n only_o in_o civil_a and_o private_a quarrel_n as_o be_v evident_a by_o the_o eight_o verse_n if_o there_o arise_v a_o matter_n too_o hard_o for_o thou_o in_o judgement_n between_o blood_n and_o blood_n between_o plea_n and_o plea_n between_o stroke_n and_o stroke_n be_v matter_n of_o controversy_n within_o thy_o gate_n etc._n etc._n now_o because_o these_o word_n so_o plain_o import_v private_a injury_n and_o law_n suit_n mr._n c._n jump_v from_o they_o and_o cite_v 2_o chron._n 19.8_o where_o this_o be_v not_o so_o plain_a though_o plain_a enough_o too_o now_o what_o to_o his_o purpose_n can_v follow_v hence_o unless_o he_o will_v make_v out_o this_o consequence_n we_o must_v submit_v to_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o magistrate_n in_o all_o our_o contest_v and_o brawl_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v assent_v to_o all_o the_o determination_n of_o the_o church_n as_o true_a and_o infallible_a but_o these_o proportion_n be_v at_o such_o a_o wide_a distance_n from_o each_o other_o that_o i_o doubt_v he_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o fit_v himself_o with_o a_o medius_fw-la terminus_fw-la large_a enough_o to_o couple_v they_o together_o 2._o what_o more_o can_v be_v deduce_v hence_o then_o that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o submit_v to_o the_o sentence_n of_o superior_n and_o this_o what_o protestant_a deny_v do_v not_o we_o plead_v for_o it_o as_o well_o as_o you_o but_o what_o like_o a_o inference_n can_v be_v draw_v from_o this_o for_o a_o internal_a submission_n of_o judgement_n nothing_o at_o all_o till_o he_o can_v make_v good_a that_o we_o can_v submit_v to_o the_o sentence_n of_o our_o judge_n unless_o we_o believe_v they_o just_a and_o true_a a_o assertion_n ridiculous_o false_a but_o 3._o you_o tell_v we_o that_o in_o this_o obedience_n be_v employ_v a_o assent_n or_o submission_n of_o judgement_n but_o how_o sir_n will_v you_o prove_v this_o i_o dare_v not_o take_v your_o bare_a word_n for_o it_o notwithstanding_o your_o solemn_a protestation_n at_o the_o begin_n of_o your_o book_n sect._n 8_o and_o then_o a_o little_a after_o you_o affirm_v that_o its_o possible_a those_o very_a judge_n may_v give_v a_o wrong_a sentence_n if_o so_o then_o be_v it_o possible_a for_o god_n upon_o pain_n of_o death_n to_o require_v we_o to_o believe_v a_o falsehood_n for_o it_o be_v possible_a you_o say_v they_o shall_v give_v wrong_a sentence_n and_o yet_o you_o will_v have_v they_o upon_o pain_n of_o death_n to_o believe_v it_o right_n but_o 4._o you_o tell_v we_o that_o this_o assent_n and_o submission_n of_o judgement_n must_v be_v give_v otherwise_o the_o obedience_n will_v be_v against_o conscience_n in_o case_n the_o party_n continue_v in_o a_o contrary_a opinion_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n but_o we_o can_v not_o submit_v to_o the_o judge_n sentence_n without_o hypocrisy_n unless_o we_o assent_v to_o its_o equity_n suppose_v they_o shall_v mistake_v as_o you_o say_v they_o may_v the_o innocent_a for_o the_o injurious_a must_v the_o party_n think_v himself_o a_o knave_n because_o they_o think_v so_o like_o the_o poor_a fellow_n that_o though_o he_o see_v the_o priest_n lie_v with_o his_o wife_n yet_o do_v penance_n for_o say_v so_o and_o be_v force_v to_o say_v tongue_n thou_o lie_v this_o be_v such_o a_o assertion_n that_o i_o believe_v never_o yet_o any_o casuist_n dream_v of_o when_o we_o appeal_v to_o judge_n our_o meaning_n be_v not_o we_o will_v think_v as_o they_o think_v but_o we_o will_v submissive_o acquiesce_v as_o they_o shall_v determine_v again_o it_o be_v still_o more_o strange_a that_o when_o false_a judgement_n be_v give_v the_o contend_a party_n must_v either_o believe_v a_o lie_n or_o must_v confront_v his_o conscience_n in_o not_o believe_v it_o for_o if_o he_o assent_v not_o to_o the_o equity_n of_o the_o decision_n he_o go_v say_v you_o against_o his_o conscience_n and_o if_o he_o do_v he_o must_v believe_v against_o the_o truth_n when_o he_o believe_v that_o to_o be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o law_n which_o be_v not_o arg._n 1._o sect._n 11_o next_o follow_v his_o argument_n for_o his_o church_n infallibility_n the_o first_o run_v thus_o our_o saviour_n have_v promise_v his_o apostle_n that_o he_o will_v be_v present_a with_o they_o always_o to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n therefore_o fince_v not_o any_o of_o they_o outlive_v that_o age_n this_o infallible_a promise_n must_v be_v make_v good_a to_o their_o successor_n answ_n 1._o i_o may_v
church_n do_v it_o follow_v that_o it_o shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o any_o particular_a church_n the_o greek_a church_n be_v once_o a_o true_a church_n in_o your_o esteem_n but_o now_o you_o say_v it_o be_v poison_v and_o destroy_v by_o heresy_n if_o then_o this_o promise_n be_v make_v to_o no_o particular_a church_n why_o must_v it_o be_v so_o apply_v to_o your_o own_o particular_a church_n before_o you_o use_v this_o argument_n to_o any_o purpose_n first_o prove_v you_o to_o be_v the_o universal_a church_n but_o of_o this_o you_o presume_v it_o be_v a_o sad_a symptom_n of_o the_o weakness_n of_o your_o cause_n when_o you_o build_v it_o upon_o beg_v and_o ungranted_a presumption_n and_o still_o suppose_v your_o most_o difficult_a and_o material_a dispute_n to_o be_v grant_v ar._n 5._o he_o have_v command_v that_o whoever_o shall_v not_o obey_v his_o church_n sect._n 15_o shall_v be_v cut_v off_o from_o his_o body_n as_o a_o heathen_a and_o a_o publican_n therefore_o anathemas_n pronounce_v by_o his_o church_n be_v valid_a our_o lord_n indeed_o speak_v of_o decision_n make_v by_o a_o particular_a church_n in_o quarrel_n among_o brethren_n therefore_o if_o disobedience_n to_o such_o decision_n be_v so_o grievous_o punish_v what_o punishment_n may_v we_o suppose_v attend_v such_o as_o be_v disobedient_a to_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n call_v by_o the_o apostle_n the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n make_v for_o the_o compose_n of_o public_a debate_n about_o the_o common_a faith_n answ_n 1._o because_o his_o very_a objection_n have_v furnish_v we_o with_o a_o superfluity_n of_o answer_n it_o will_v be_v superfluous_a to_o criticise_v in_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d by_o not_o apply_v it_o to_o any_o establish_a christian_a government_n when_o it_o may_v be_v and_o by_o many_o interpreter_n be_v refer_v to_o the_o college_n or_o assembly_n of_o the_o elder_n among_o the_o jew_n by_o other_o to_o any_o multitude_n by_o agreement_n convene_v as_o justin_n martyr_n paraphrase_v it_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o so_o may_v be_v equivalent_a with_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 1_o tim._n 5.20_o and_o then_o what_o be_v all_o this_o to_o the_o church_n authority_n but_o let_v this_o go_v 2._o what_o be_v this_o to_o infallibility_n will_v he_o infer_v that_o particular_a church_n be_v infallible_a because_o their_o decision_n must_v be_v submit_v to_o if_o he_o will_v than_o he_o prove_v what_o himself_n will_v deny_v and_o constitute_v we_o infallible_a judge_n at_o home_n without_o recourse_n to_o ecumenical_a council_n but_o if_o he_o do_v not_o then_o how_o enormous_a be_v his_o deduction_n because_o the_o decision_n of_o particular_a church_n which_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v fallible_a must_v be_v obey_v therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v infallible_a 3._o our_o saviour_n enjoin_v they_o obedience_n to_o the_o command_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n be_v they_o infallible_a too_o child_n be_v command_v prov._n 6._o to_o be_v subject_a to_o their_o parent_n in_o all_o thing_n be_v all_o father_n too_o therefore_o infallible_a we_o must_v obey_v the_o command_n of_o king_n and_o prince_n can_v they_o err_v neither_o and_o be_v not_o the_o inference_n as_o conclude_v we_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v parent_n and_o governor_n ergo_fw-la they_o be_v infallible_a as_o because_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v the_o church_n therefore_o that_o be_v infallible_a 4._o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n that_o must_v here_o be_v submit_v to_o be_v about_o quarrel_n and_o injury_n among_o brethren_n but_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o because_o the_o church_n may_v be_v judge_n of_o our_o quarrel_n that_o it_o may_v be_v judge_n of_o our_o faith_n too_o if_o it_o do_v we_o will_v have_v all_o decide_v by_o our_o judge_n of_o assize_n without_o go_v to_o rome_n its_o time_n now_o you_o shall_v have_v learn_v the_o difference_n of_o submit_v to_o the_o determination_n of_o judge_n in_o matter_n of_o right_a between_o man_n and_o man_n from_o assent_v to_o their_o decree_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n between_o god_n and_o man_n 5._o the_o greek_a church_n say_v she_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o you_o be_v heretic_n but_o to_o yourselves_o you_o be_v the_o true_a church_n and_o she_o be_v heretical_a how_o shall_v i_o know_v to_o which_o of_o your_o church_n this_o text_n direct_v i_o why_o be_v it_o not_o as_o cogent_a to_o drive_v i_o to_o they_o as_o to_o you_o if_o they_o tell_v i_o as_o you_o do_v that_o unless_o i_o obey_v the_o church_n that_o be_v their_o church_n i_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o christian_n how_o shall_v i_o answer_v they_o if_o you_o can_v teach_v i_o you_o will_v but_o teach_v i_o how_o to_o answer_v you_o ar._n sect._n 16_o 6._o the_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n unity_n be_v a_o unchangeable_a article_n of_o our_o creed_n therefore_o certain_o the_o only_a effectual_a mean_n to_o preserve_v unity_n which_o be_v a_o unappealable_a and_o infallible_a authority_n shall_v never_o be_v want_v in_o the_o church_n a._n not_o to_o repeat_v that_o we_o have_v as_o sovereign_a a_o remedy_n to_o preserve_v unity_n without_o a_o infallible_a authority_n as_o you_o have_v with_o it_o we_o believe_v the_o church_n unity_n yet_o believe_v too_o that_o this_o be_v only_o a_o unity_n of_o faith_n and_o a_o agreement_n in_o the_o essential_o of_o religion_n we_o be_v all_o but_o one_o in_o christianity_n and_o so_o one_o church_n but_o shall_v we_o believe_v such_o a_o unity_n in_o the_o church_n as_o that_o it_o shall_v have_v no_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n as_o you_o will_v persuade_v we_o we_o must_v believe_v against_o experience_n for_o unless_o we_o will_v unchurch_n all_o party_n but_o our_o own_o which_o will_v be_v a_o most_o uncharitable_a presumption_n we_o must_v acknowledge_v a_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n in_o the_o true_a church_n and_o so_o not_o make_v unity_n of_o judgement_n in_o the_o church_n a_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o if_o there_o be_v no_o church_n without_o it_o than_o yourselves_o must_v be_v unchurch_v see_v you_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o there_o be_v variety_n of_o differ_v opinion_n among_o yourselves_o even_o about_o the_o very_a mean_n to_o preserve_v unity_n urge_v we_o not_o then_o with_o this_o argument_n any_o more_o till_o you_o can_v prove_v that_o we_o believe_v any_o other_o unity_n in_o the_o church_n beside_o a_o unity_n and_o agreement_n in_o the_o christian_a faith_n and_o that_o you_o be_v any_o more_o than_o so_o one_o among_o yourselves_o now_o let_v all_o that_o be_v rational_a judge_n whether_o we_o have_v reason_n to_o believe_v your_o commission_n divine_a when_o you_o can_v exhibit_v no_o better_a credential_n for_o it_o than_o these_o which_o we_o have_v so_o clear_o evince_v to_o be_v mere_a blank_n and_o so_o yourselves_o who_o pretend_v from_o their_o validity_n to_o be_v esteem_v as_o infallible_a commissary_n authorise_v from_o heaven_n to_o be_v most_o notorious_a cheat_n and_o impostor_n by_o these_o answer_n sect._n 17_o to_o which_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o add_v hundred_o more_o i_o hope_v it_o be_v clear_a that_o we_o be_v able_a to_o evacuate_v all_o pretence_n for_o their_o church_n infallibility_n 101._o mr._n c._n p._n 101._o without_o fly_v to_o that_o miserable_a shift_n which_o you_o most_o disingenuous_o fasten_v on_o mr._n chillingworth_n viz._n that_o all_o these_o promise_n be_v only_o conditional_a and_o depend_v on_o the_o piety_n of_o church_n governor_n i_o say_v disingenuous_o for_o 1._o why_o do_v you_o not_o refer_v we_o to_o the_o page_n in_o mr._n 86._o part_v 1_o c_o 2._o p._n 86._o chillingworth_n only_o that_o your_o abuse_n of_o that_o worthy_a person_n may_v escape_v unknown_a for_o 2._o mr._n chillingworths_n answer_n be_v that_o suppose_v god_n have_v promise_v to_o assist_v the_o roman_a church_n for_o the_o delivery_n of_o true_a scripture_n will_v it_o follow_v thence_o that_o he_o have_v oblige_v himself_o to_o teach_v they_o this_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n not_o only_o sufficient_o but_o irresistible_o he_o give_v the_o child_n of_o israel_n a_o fire_n to_o lead_v they_o by_o night_n and_o a_o pillar_n of_o cloud_n by_o day_n but_o he_o constrain_v no_o man_n to_o follow_v they_o what_o than_o if_o your_o church_n will_v not_o follow_v god_n guidance_n be_v he_o not_o free_a from_o his_o promise_n and_o yet_o you_o in_o a_o error_n too_o do_v not_o call_v this_o a_o shift_n but_o show_v that_o it_o be_v so_o 3._o that_o you_o may_v see_v mr._n chillingworth_n can_v answer_v you_o without_o this_o shift_n read_v and_o confute_v if_o you_o can_v the_o next_o immediate_o ensue_v word_n what_o a_o impudence_n be_v it_o to_o pretend_v that_o your_o church_n be_v infallible_o direct_v concern_v the_o true_a meaning_n of_o the_o
scripture_n whereas_o there_o be_v a_o thousand_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o you_o do_v not_o pretend_v certain_o to_o understand_v and_o about_o the_o interpretation_n whereof_o your_o own_o doctor_n differ_v among_o themselves_o if_o your_o church_n be_v infallible_o direct_v concern_v the_o 〈◊〉_d meaning_n of_o scripture_n why_o do_v not_o your_o doctor_n follow_v her_o infallible_a direction_n and_o if_o they_o do_v how_o come_v such_o difference_n among_o they_o in_o their_o interpretation_n again_o why_o do_v your_o church_n thus_o put_v her_o candle_n unde_fw-la a_o bushel_n and_o keep_v her_o talon_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n infallible_o thus_o long_o wrap_v up_o in_o napkin_n why_o set_v she_o not_o forth_o infallible_a commentary_n upon_o all_o the_o bible_n be_v it_o because_o this_o will_v not_o be_v profitable_a to_o christian_n that_o scripture_n shall_v be_v interpret_v it_o be_v blasphemy_n to_o say_v so_o the_o scripture_n itself_o tell_v we_o all_o scripture_n be_v profitable_a and_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o so_o much_o the_o word_n as_o the_o sense_n thereof_o and_o if_o it_o be_v not_o profitable_a why_o do_v she_o employ_v her_o doctor_n to_o interpret_v scripture_n fallible_o unless_o we_o must_v think_v that_o fallible_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v profitable_a but_o infallible_a interpretation_n will_v not_o be_v so_o how_o dare_v you_o upbraid_v this_o worthy_a and_o victorious_a champion_n as_o if_o he_o have_v no_o other_o shield_n wherewith_o to_o defend_v himself_o when_o this_o argument_n be_v so_o full_a and_o cogent_a well_o then_o the_o sense_n of_o these_o promise_n the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o you_o i_o will_v be_v with_o you_o to_o the_o world_n end_n be_v only_o this_o that_o god_n will_v so_o order_v it_o in_o his_o providence_n as_o that_o his_o church_n shall_v still_o continue_v upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n maugre_o all_o the_o malicious_a design_n of_o man_n and_o devil_n to_o overthrow_v and_o quite_o extinguish_v she_o and_o so_o your_o other_o quarrel_n with_o our_o protestant_a writer_n be_v a_o mere_a impertinence_n albeit_o we_o meet_v with_o it_o once_o and_o again_o in_o your_o treatise_n of_o schism_n where_o we_o will_v throw_v away_o some_o time_n in_o confute_v of_o it_o see_v you_o be_v not_o please_v to_o afford_v we_o any_o better_a employment_n in_o your_o next_o paragraph_n sect._n 18_o you_o thus_o dispute_v see_v these_o promise_n 102._o p._n 102._o viz._n which_o concern_v the_o church_n essential_a or_o diffuse_v be_v yea_o and_o amen_o the_o doctor_n must_v apply_v they_o to_o his_o english_a protestant_n church_n since_o he_o will_v not_o allow_v they_o to_o the_o catholic_n i._n e._n roman_n for_o to_o some_o church_n they_o must_v be_v apply_v answ_n 1._o as_o if_o there_o be_v no_o church_n beside_o the_o roman_a and_o the_o english_a church_n in_o christendom_n have_v the_o church_n of_o sardis_n thus_o argue_v for_o these_o promise_n against_o the_o church_n of_o thyatira_n or_o other_o now_o overrun_v with_o mahumetism_n will_v not_o the_o event_n have_v show_v the_o fallacy_n 2._o the_o doctor_n allow_v they_o to_o the_o catholic_n in_o the_o sense_n we_o speak_v of_o viz._n that_o however_o she_o may_v be_v distress_v and_o bring_v low_a and_o seem_v to_o be_v dissert_v yet_o shall_v she_o continue_v and_o persevere_v to_o the_o world_n end_n but_o do_v it_o follow_v that_o because_o he_o allow_v it_o to_o the_o catholic_n he_o must_v do_v it_o to_o the_o roman_a or_o any_o other_o particular_a church_n which_o be_v but_o at_o best_a a_o infect_a member_n of_o the_o whole_a 3._o we_o will_v be_v so_o liberal_a as_o to_o grant_v you_o a_o right_n in_o they_o but_o your_o absurd_a interpretation_n of_o they_o and_o absurd_a deduction_n from_o they_o we_o deny_v you_o must_v first_o prove_v that_o any_o of_o they_o promise_n infallibility_n before_o you_o conclude_v a_o necessity_n from_o they_o that_o some_o church_n must_v be_v infallible_a and_o to_o what_o purpose_n do_v you_o annex_v a_o sentence_n of_o st._n sect._n 19_o gregory_n and_o another_o of_o constantine_n in_o defence_n of_o the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n if_o say_v you_o the_o doctor_n apply_v these_o promise_n to_o his_o own_o and_o not_o to_o the_o catholic_n church_n then_o do_v he_o condemn_v st._n gregory_n that_o profess_v he_o venerate_v the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n ergo_fw-la the_o roman_a church_n against_o which_o the_o doctor_n dispute_v as_o the_o four_o gospel_n but_o the_o doctor_n do_v allow_v they_o to_o the_o catholic_n and_o so_o no_o fear_n of_o quarrel_v with_o st._n gregory_n in_o their_o own_o account_n yea_o he_o will_v not_o fear_v to_o grant_v with_o the_o reverend_a archbishop_n that_o they_o be_v de_fw-fr post_fw-la facto_fw-la that_o be_v be_v receive_v by_o the_o universal_a church_n diffuse_v infallible_a as_o to_o the_o matter_n of_o faith_n determine_v by_o they_o and_o yet_o this_o sequel_n seem_v somewhat_o harsh_a i_o venerate_v the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n as_o the_o four_o gospel_n ergo_fw-la the_o promise_n cite_v by_o mr._n c._n belong_v to_o the_o roman_z catholic_n church_n in_o all_o age_n a_o inference_n so_o entire_o absurd_a and_o weak_a that_o it_o be_v a_o shame_n to_o insult_v over_o it_o nor_o will_v the_o profession_n of_o constantine_n any_o thing_n avail_v to_o prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n but_o at_o the_o most_o of_o a_o general_n council_n only_o albeit_o i_o can_v see_v but_o that_o it_o may_v fair_o admit_v of_o another_o sense_n for_o speak_v of_o the_o paschal_n feast_n which_o the_o council_n have_v decree_v shall_v be_v keep_v unanimous_o he_o call_v it_o a_o divine_a command_n and_o give_v this_o reason_n because_o whatever_o be_v decree_v in_o the_o council_n of_o bishop_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d have_v respect_n to_o the_o divine_a will_n they_o meddle_v not_o with_o humane_a affair_n but_o divine_v only_o and_o yet_o we_o add_v that_o if_o it_o be_v true_a which_o constantine_n be_v deem_v by_o he_o to_o say_v it_o will_v little_o avail_v he_o since_o none_o of_o our_o controversy_n have_v be_v determine_v by_o a_o general_n council_n against_o we_o albeit_o for_o a_o close_a we_o dare_v not_o idolise_v the_o holy_a emperor_n so_o much_o as_o to_o think_v his_o verdict_n infallible_a but_o when_o you_o talk_v of_o condemn_v all_o the_o council_n ecumenical_a of_o god_n church_n and_o our_o act_n of_o parliament_n viz._n by_o deny_v your_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a for_o that_o be_v the_o dispute_n you_o talk_v at_o random_n and_o your_o reason_n because_o the_o father_n in_o these_o council_n pronounce_v anathema_n against_o those_o who_o will_v not_o believe_v their_o decision_n be_v as_o weak_a as_o it_o be_v old_a for_o we_o have_v often_o return_v unto_o you_o that_o these_o anathema_n be_v no_o good_a argument_n that_o the_o propounder_n of_o they_o conceive_v themselves_o infallible_a but_o only_o that_o they_o conceive_v the_o doctrine_n they_o condemn_v evident_o damnable_a or_o at_o least_o contrary_a to_o scripture_n and_o right_a reason_n and_o so_o proscribe_v they_o with_o a_o rational_a and_o humane_a certainty_n the_o same_o we_o have_v in_o our_o court_n of_o judicature_n on_o which_o man_n life_n and_o estate_n whole_o depend_v and_o yet_o be_v neither_o the_o juries_n verdict_n nor_o the_o judge_n sentence_n infallible_a as_o be_v evident_a from_o this_o that_o particular_a council_n nay_o particular_a father_n have_v be_v very_o prodigal_a of_o their_o anathema_n which_o yet_o be_v never_o conceive_v infallible_a presumption_n not_o word_n but_o thing_n be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o faith_n therefore_o the_o introduce_v new_a word_n be_v no_o make_v of_o new_a article_n but_o if_o you_o will_v assert_v that_o under_o those_o new_a expression_n be_v couch_v new_a article_n too_o upon_o this_o supposition_n it_o will_v be_v no_o ill_a manner_n to_o reprove_v their_o presumption_n either_o by_o other_o or_o themselves_o and_o thence_o it_o be_v apparent_a that_o we_o be_v not_o present_o to_o yield_v up_o our_o assent_n to_o proposal_n because_o attend_v with_o these_o anathema_n see_v by_o so_o do_v we_o may_v assent_v to_o a_o untruth_n and_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v the_o contrary_a to_o what_o scripture_n have_v reveal_v nor_o can_v i_o imagine_v to_o what_o end_n you_o shall_v inform_v we_o of_o new_a expression_n in_o these_o general_n council_n as_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d wherein_o you_o be_v mistake_v and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d will_v this_o prove_v the_o roman_a church_n yea_o will_v it_o prove_v a_o council_n to_o be_v infallible_a this_o sure_o be_v a_o easy_a way_n to_o become_v infallible_a will_v you_o thence_o conclude_v their_o authority_n to_o broach_v new_a doctrine_n then_o must_v not_o
christ_n be_v think_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d nor_o his_o sacred_a mother_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d before_o the_o nicene_n council_n thus_o decree_v and_o what_o else_o you_o can_v design_n i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o imagine_v and_o have_v you_o not_o a_o good_a stock_n of_o confidence_n sect._n 20_o who_o after_o one_o impertinent_a citation_n of_o a_o pope_n one_o baffle_v sophism_n and_o one_o doubtful_a sentence_n of_o a_o emperor_n can_v challenge_v the_o consent_n of_o all_o antiquity_n whereas_o the_o suffrage_n of_o antiquity_n be_v evident_o on_o our_o side_n who_o hold_v the_o oracle_n of_o god_n to_o be_v the_o only_a infallible_a rule_n and_o guide_v whereby_o we_o be_v to_o judge_v of_o doctrine_n as_o you_o may_v see_v evince_v as_o elsewhere_o so_o copious_o in_o mr._n baxter_n safe_a religion_n from_o p._n 299_o to_o 372._o but_o especial_o from_o p._n 357_o to_o the_o end_n last_o how_o vain_o do_v you_o call_v in_o the_o suffrage_n of_o the_o reverend_a bishop_n bramhall_n and_o dr._n ham._n to_o conclude_v this_o infallibility_n because_o forsooth_o they_o promise_v to_o submit_v to_o a_o lawful_a general_n council_n see_v they_o also_o promise_v and_o so_o do_v every_o regular_a son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n to_o submit_v to_o the_o determinatious_a of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o acquiesce_v in_o they_o without_o the_o least_o manner_n of_o opposition_n and_o yet_o never_o dream_v of_o any_o infallibility_n reside_v in_o they_o yea_o 2._o the_o place_n cite_v speak_v only_o of_o a_o general_n council_n which_o find_v a_o approbation_n and_o reception_n among_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n diffuse_v 1._o see_v dr._n h._n she_o s_o 13._o nu_fw-la 2._o s_o 9_o nu_fw-la 1._o 3._o can_v they_o be_v esteem_v to_o have_v say_v so_o much_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n who_o infallibility_n the_o doctor_n question_v and_o yet_o write_v so_o resolute_o and_o convince_o as_o they_o have_v do_v against_o her_o tyranny_n and_o superstition_n to_o the_o objection_n take_v from_o that_o almost_o general_a apostasy_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n sect._n 21_o when_o arrianism_n commence_v orthodox_n and_o apostolical_a truth_n become_v the_o only_a heresy_n he_o tell_v we_o 1._o 105._o mr._n c._n p._n 105._o that_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n be_v indeed_o persecute_v and_o many_o banish_v but_o not_o one_o of_o they_o change_v the_o profession_n of_o the_o nicene_n faith_n unless_o you_o will_v accuse_v pope_n liberius_n who_o for_o a_o while_n dissemble_v and_o then_o repent_v answ_n can_v this_o be_v affirm_v with_o any_o truth_n when_o as_o that_o say_n be_v almost_o proverbial_a athanasius_n oppose_v the_o world_n and_o the_o world_n athanasius_n 2._o theod._n he_o l_o 2._o when_o liberius_n have_v the_o contemptible_a paucity_n of_o his_o adherent_n object_v to_o he_o answer_v there_o be_v a_o time_n when_o but_o three_o oppose_a the_o decree_n of_o the_o king_n and_o yet_o those_o three_o be_v in_o the_o right_n and_o the_o rest_n in_o the_o wrong_n vincentium_fw-la ep._n 48_o ad_fw-la vincentium_fw-la when_o the_o professor_n of_o error_n as_o st._n austin_n confess_v surpass_v the_o number_n of_o the_o professor_n of_o truth_n in_o proportion_n as_o the_o sand_n of_o the_o sea_n do_v the_o star_n of_o heaven_n when_o the_o author_n of_o nazianzens_n life_n testify_v that_o the_o heresy_n of_o arius_n have_v possess_v in_o a_o manner_n the_o whole_a extent_n of_o the_o world_n ipso_fw-la i●_n vita_fw-la naz._n i●_n orat._n con_v artan_a &_o p●o●se_o ipso_fw-la yea_o and_o nazianzene_n himself_o cry_v out_o where_o be_v they_o that_o reproach_n we_o with_o our_o poverty_n who_o define_v the_o church_n by_o her_o multitude_n and_o despise_v the_o little_a flock_n they_o have_v the_o people_n but_o we_o the_o faith_n yea_o last_o when_o athanasius_n be_v so_o overbear_v with_o flood_n of_o arian_n as_o that_o he_o be_v force_v to_o write_v a_o treatise_n on_o purpose_n against_o those_o who_o judge_v of_o the_o truth_n only_o by_o plurality_n of_o adherent_n 6._o her_o c._n 6._o do_v you_o never_o read_v vincentius_n lirin_fw-mi complain_v that_o arianorum_n venenum_fw-la non_fw-la jam_fw-la portiunculam_fw-la quandam_fw-la sed_fw-la paene_fw-la totum_fw-la orbem_fw-la contaminaverat_fw-la adeò_fw-la ut_fw-la prope_fw-la cunctis_fw-la latini_n nominis_fw-la episcopis_fw-la partim_fw-la vi_fw-la partim_fw-la fraud_n dece_fw-la this_fw-mi calgio_fw-la quaedam_fw-la mentibus_fw-la effunderetur_fw-la athanas_n or●t_v in_o athanas_n nor_o that_o of_o nazian_a 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d except_o a_o very_a few_o which_o either_o because_o of_o their_o virtue_n resist_v or_o by_o reason_n of_o their_o obscurity_n be_v contemn_v all_o obey_v the_o time_n i._n e._n become_v arrian_n differ_v only_o in_o this_o that_o some_o do_v it_o early_o some_o late_a some_o be_v ringleader_n in_o that_o impiety_n of_o arianism_n some_o be_v in_o the_o second_o place_n either_o by_o fear_n or_o gain_v flattery_n or_o ignorance_n circumvent_v and_o draw_v in_o which_o ignorance_n will_v not_o say_v he_o excuse_v they_o it_o be_v shameful_a for_o a_o bishop_n to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o the_o principle_n of_o faith_n nor_o that_o of_o basil_n we_o may_v now_o say_v that_o we_o have_v neither_o princeps_fw-la 71._o basil_n ep_v 71._o propheta_fw-la nor_o praeses_fw-la leave_v we_o in_o so_o much_o that_o he_o cry_v out_o have_v the_o lord_n quite_o desert_v his_o church_n be_v it_o the_o last_o hour_n do_v the_o defection_n now_o take_v place_n by_o which_o the_o son_n of_o perdition_n be_v to_o be_v reveal_v but_o if_o all_o these_o must_v be_v overlook_v must_v you_o needs_o contradict_v st._n jerome_n whilst_o you_o have_v he_o before_o your_o eye_n tell_v you_o that_o tunc_fw-la ousiae_fw-la nomen_fw-la abolitum_fw-la est_fw-la tunc_fw-la nicenae_n fidei_fw-la damnatio_fw-la conclamata_fw-la est_fw-la ingemuit_fw-la tot_fw-la we_o orbis_fw-la etc._n etc._n do_v st._n jerome_n here_o tell_v you_o that_o no_o bishop_n change_v the_o profession_n of_o the_o nicene_n faith_n or_o do_v you_o say_v it_o in_o despite_n to_o dr._n field_n who_o inform_v we_o that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o seleucia_n and_o ariminum_n the_o nicene_n faith_n be_v condemn_v and_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n carry_v away_o with_o the_o sway_n of_o time_n fall_v from_o the_o soundness_n of_o the_o faith_n only_a athanasius_n except_v and_o some_o few_o confessor_n that_o sub_fw-la athanasii_fw-la nomine_fw-la exulabant_fw-la as_o hierome_n note_v write_v against_o the_o luciferian_o his_o second_o answer_n be_v ibid._n ibid._n that_o at_o first_o all_o the_o article_n make_v in_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n be_v perfect_o orthodox_n and_o that_o the_o catholic_n bishop_n subscribe_v to_o nothing_o but_o what_o in_o their_o sense_n be_v true_a though_o defective_a in_o deliver_v all_o the_o truth_n that_o present_o after_o be_v at_o liberty_n themselves_o and_o all_o the_o rest_n renounce_v what_o they_o have_v subscribe_v to_o answ_n we_o grant_v that_o when_o the_o council_n be_v first_o call_v the_o major_a part_n be_v orthodox_n 29._o socrat._v his_o ec._n l._n 42._o c._n 29._o as_o their_o epistle_n to_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n show_v but_o that_o afterward_o they_o relent_v and_o consent_v to_o the_o arian_n appear_v from_o the_o epistle_n of_o pope_n liberius_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o east_n who_o tell_v they_o that_o albeit_o all_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n who_o meet_v at_o ariminum_n 2._o apud_fw-la so●_n l._n 4._o c._n 11._o and_o sulpitius_n l._n 2._o c._n 58._o plerique_fw-la nostrorum_fw-la partim_fw-la imbecillitate_fw-la ingenii_fw-la partim_fw-la taedio_fw-la peregrinationis_fw-la evicti_fw-la dedere_fw-la se_fw-la adversariis_fw-la sactaque_fw-la semel_fw-la inclinatione_fw-la animorum_fw-la catervatim_fw-la in_o partem_fw-la alteram_fw-la concessum_fw-la donec_fw-la ad_fw-la viginti_fw-la usque_fw-la nostrorum_fw-la numerus_fw-la est_fw-la imminutus_fw-la that_o be_v till_o 400_o come_v to_o 20._o see_v c._n 5_o 6._o soz._n he_o ecc._n l._n 7._o c._n 2._o and_o which_o either_o compel_v by_o force_n or_o entice_v by_o deceit_n à_fw-la fide_fw-la tum_fw-la quidem_fw-la desciverant_fw-la yet_o now_o they_o be_v return_v to_o a_o sound_a mind_n subscribe_v to_o the_o nicene_n faith_n and_o renounce_v the_o form_n of_o faith_n make_v by_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n with_o a_o anathema_n so_o then_o all_o these_o bishop_n of_o the_o west_n as_o well_o as_o the_o whole_a east_n jerusalem_n except_v do_v a_o fide_fw-la deficere_fw-la and_o albeit_o they_o afterward_o renounce_v arianisme_n yet_o confess_o for_o sometime_o they_o yield_v to_o it_o and_o as_o to_o their_o subscription_n to_o the_o arian_n creed_n where_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v change_v into_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d if_o that_o be_v not_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n why_o do_v the_o
pontifical_a which_o tell_v we_o crucis_fw-la cap_n 2._o do_v ben_v sanct._n crucis_fw-la that_o the_o pontifex_n in_o which_o name_n other_o bishop_n be_v include_v ante_fw-la imaginem_fw-la crucis_fw-la genua_fw-la flectit_fw-la eamque_fw-la devotè_fw-la adorat_fw-la &_o osculatur_fw-la heb._n magist_n ceremon_n lib._n 2._o &_o de_fw-la feria_fw-la 6._o majoris_fw-la heb._n and_o feriâ_fw-la sextâ_fw-la or_o on_o good_a friday_n when_o the_o pope_n or_o priest_n uncover_v gentle_o the_o cross_n and_o cry_v ccce_fw-la signum_fw-la crucis_fw-la and_o the_o singer_n answer_n venite_fw-la adoremus_fw-la that_o the_o pope_n put_v off_o his_o shoe_n or_o make_v as_o if_o he_o do_v so_o &_o genus_fw-la ter_z flexo_fw-la adorat_fw-la &_o osculatur_fw-la and_o then_o all_o the_o rabble_n ad_fw-la infimum_fw-la caudatarium_fw-la omnes_fw-la crucem_fw-la adorant_fw-la &_o osculantur_fw-la so_o than_o you_o have_v no_o cause_n i_o hope_v to_o quarrel_v with_o we_o for_o say_v you_o worship_v image_n when_o so_o many_o of_o your_o great_a doctor_n that_o know_v this_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n as_o well_o as_o yourself_o acknowledge_v that_o as_o a_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n which_o you_o so_o wary_o disclaim_v when_o general_a council_n yea_o and_o common_a practice_n can_v assure_v we_o of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o you_o ask_v we_o further_o 158._o sect._n 10._o p._n 158._o whether_o indeed_o we_o think_v that_o you_o worship_v false_a god_n and_o true_a devil_n ans_fw-fr you_o may_v be_v idolatrous_a in_o worship_v the_o true_a god_n in_o a_o image_n as_o well_o as_o the_o israelite_n in_o their_o worship_a god_n in_o a_o calf_n 2._o that_o you_o worship_v false_a saint_n and_o elilim_n ibid._n de_fw-fr cultu_fw-la sanct._n ibid._n see_v abundant_o evidence_v in_o the_o sedan_n divine_v 3._o you_o ask_v whether_o we_o consider_v our_o image_n as_o they_o do_v their_o idol_n to_o which_o by_o magical_a conjuration_n they_o annex_v a_o evil_a spirit_n to_o do_v wonder_n and_o extort_v divine_a worship_n from_o the_o seduce_v ans_fw-fr what_o if_o some_o of_o the_o learned_a among_o the_o heathen_n as_o athenaeus_n confess_v christ_n legat._n pro_fw-la christ_n think_v that_o the_o deity_n or_o some_o divine_a vitrue_a accompany_v the_o statute_n after_o consecration_n will_v it_o cease_v to_o be_v idolatry_n if_o the_o image_n of_o jupiter_n be_v worship_v or_o any_o other_o deity_n without_o these_o magical_a enchantment_n 2._o what_o shall_v we_o think_v of_o these_o image_n which_o you_o call_v miraculous_a which_o you_o say_v sometime_o sweat_v blood_n sometime_o nod_v their_o head_n or_o stretch_v forth_o a_o wooden_a or_o stony_a arm_n unto_o their_o suppliant_n dei._n vid._n miss_v rom._n sub_fw-la tit_n de_fw-fr ritu_fw-la serm._n where_o you_o have_v as_o bad_a or_o worse_o in_o the_o dedication_n of_o the_o cross_n the_o image_n of_o saint_n john_n and_o the_o agnus_n dei._n or_o of_o the_o form_n of_o consecration_n viz._n sanctify_v o_o god_n this_o form_n of_o the_o bless_a virgin_n that_o it_o may_v bring_v save_v health_n to_o thy_o faithful_a people_n that_o thundering_n and_o lightning_n may_v be_v drive_v away_o the_o soon_o that_o immoderate_a rain_n or_o flood_n and_o civil_a war_n may_v at_o the_o presence_n of_o this_o be_v suppress_v pont._n rom._n 3._o may_v not_o the_o jew_n have_v put_v the_o same_o question_n to_o those_o that_o accuse_v they_o of_o idolatry_n in_o worship_v the_o brazen_a image_n 4._o what_o matter_n be_v it_o whether_o the_o heathen_n esteem_v their_o deity_n present_a or_o absent_a credit_n quis_fw-la nisi_fw-la totus_fw-la fatuus_fw-la haec_fw-la deos_fw-la esse_fw-la credit_n see_v they_o acknowledge_v most_o evident_o that_o they_o do_v not_o worship_v their_o image_n but_o their_o god_n by_o these_o image_n as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o origen_n contr._n cell_n l._n 7._o p._n 384._o arnob._n l._n 6._o advers._fw-la gentes_fw-la lact._n l._n 2._o de_fw-fr divin_fw-fr veneramur_fw-la deos_fw-la per_fw-la simulachra_fw-la veneramur_fw-la institut_fw-la c._n 2._o we_o fear_v not_o the_o work_n of_o man_n hand_n viz._n these_o image_n but_o those_o we_o fear_v to_o who_o these_o be_v consecrate_v august_n in_o ps_n 96._o i_o do_v not_o worship_v that_o stone_n or_o that_o image_n which_o be_v without_o sense_n but_o i_o adore_v what_o i_o see_v and_o serve_v he_o who_o i_o do_v not_o see_v 5._o it_o be_v evident_a that_o many_o of_o the_o heathen_n think_v their_o god_n to_o dwell_v in_o heaven_n 14._o act._n 14._o and_o to_o be_v absent_a from_o their_o statute_n hence_o the_o lycaonian_o cry_v out_o upon_o the_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o paul_n and_o barnabas_n the_o god_n be_v come_v down_o among_o we_o see_v price_n upon_o the_o place_n make_v out_o this_o by_o heathen_a author_n and_o what_o say_v the_o chaldean_n to_o nabuchadnezzar_n even_o that_o their_o god_n dwell_v not_o with_o flesh_n dan._n 2._o vers_fw-la 11._o what_o need_v i_o cite_v max._n tyr._n plut._n de_fw-fr isid_n &_o osyr_n cicero_n etc._n etc._n for_o a_o thing_n so_o clear_a last_o you_o tell_v that_o we_o sect_n 11_o there_o be_v not_o in_o catholic_n country_n a_o groom_n or_o kitchenmaid_n so_o ignorant_a but_o have_v rather_o burn_v a_o image_n then_o afford_v it_o any_o honour_n due_a to_o god_n only_o ans_fw-fr true_a but_o neither_o will_v these_o heathen_n who_o think_v they_o arrant_a fool_n who_o esteem_a image_n to_o be_v god_n 2._o nor_o can_v we_o reasonable_o think_v that_o the_o israelite_n intend_v any_o such_o thing_n in_o worship_v the_o calf_n but_o 3._o 17._o tom._n 1._o de_fw-la prob_fw-la sp_z num._n 17._o gerson_n will_v tell_v you_o that_o people_n be_v so_o infect_v with_o superstition_n as_o to_o yield_v divine_a honour_n to_o image_n and_o cornelius_n agrippa_n that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v speak_v 73._o de_fw-fr vanit_fw-la scient_a de_fw-fr imag._n fol._n 73._o how_o great_a idolatry_n be_v foster_v among_o rude_a people_n by_o image-worship_n while_o the_o priest_n connive_v at_o these_o thing_n and_o make_v no_o small_a gain_n thereby_o cassander_n imag._n consul_n de_fw-fr imag._n it_o be_v more_o manifest_a than_o that_o it_o can_v be_v deny_v that_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n and_o idol_n have_v too_o much_o prevail_v and_o the_o superstitious_a humour_n of_o people_n have_v be_v so_o cherish_v that_o nothing_o have_v be_v omit_v among_o you_o either_o of_o the_o high_a adoration_n or_o vanity_n of_o paynim_n in_o worship_v and_o adore_v image_n 13._o de_fw-fr invent_v l._n 6._o c._n 13._o and_o polydore_n virgil_n that_o there_o be_v many_o rude_a and_o stupid_a person_n that_o repose_v more_o trust_n in_o image_n then_o in_o christ_n or_o the_o saint_n to_o who_o they_o be_v dedicate_v last_o simon_n majolus_n a_o great_a stickler_n for_o imagery_n 19_o defence_n imag._n con._n 9_o c._n 19_o confess_v that_o some_o rural_a person_n esteem_v image_n as_o if_o they_o be_v god_n you_o tell_v we_o sect._n sect._n 12_o that_o it_o will_v be_v ridiculous_a to_o pray_v to_o a_o image_n ans_fw-fr to_o let_v pass_v your_o o_fw-la crux_fw-la ave_fw-la what_o can_v you_o say_v to_o salve_fw-la sancta_fw-la facies_fw-la nostri_fw-la redemptoris_fw-la in_o quâ_fw-la nitet_fw-la species_n divini_fw-la splendoris_fw-la impressa_fw-la panniculo_fw-la nivei_fw-la candoris_fw-la salve_fw-la vultus_fw-la domini_fw-la imago_fw-la beata_fw-la nos_fw-la deduc_fw-la ad_fw-la propria_fw-la o_fw-la felix_fw-la figura_fw-la ad_fw-la videndum_fw-la faciem_fw-la christi_fw-la quae_fw-la est_fw-la pura_fw-la and_o again_o crucis_fw-la brevar_n rom._n reformatum_fw-la in_o par_fw-fr hyemali_fw-la ad_fw-la 3_o martii_fw-la in_o festo_fw-la inventionis_fw-la sanctae_fw-la crucis_fw-la o_o crux_fw-la etc._n etc._n quae_fw-la sola_fw-la fuisti_fw-la digna_fw-la portare_fw-la mundi_fw-la talentum_fw-la dulce_fw-la lignum_fw-la dulces_fw-la clave_n dulcia_fw-la ferens_fw-la pondera_fw-la salva_fw-la proesentem_fw-la catervam_fw-la in_fw-la tuis_fw-la hodiè_fw-la laudibus_fw-la congregatam_fw-la last_o all_o your_o distinction_n be_v use_v with_o you_o as_o miracle_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o tongue_n be_v not_o for_o they_o that_o believe_v but_o they_o that_o believe_v not_o for_o stranger_n and_o they_o that_o make_v objection_n not_o for_o the_o obedient_a that_o worship_v image_n and_o break_v the_o commandment_n well_o sect._n 13_o but_o you_o have_v argument_n as_o well_o as_o pretence_n which_o must_v not_o be_v overlooked_a 156._o mr._n c._n p._n 156._o and_o first_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o in_o scripture_n we_o find_v king_n adore_v and_o a_o prostration_n of_o body_n pay_v to_o they_o yet_o for_o all_o this_o no_o man_n will_v suspect_v that_o any_o dishonour_n be_v intend_v to_o god_n thereby_o answer_n true_o and_o yet_o you_o may_v dishonour_v he_o by_o give_v this_o worship_n unto_o image_n see_v he_o have_v command_v say_v thou_o shall_v not_o bow_v down_o to_o they_o nor_o worship_v they_o which_o your_o gerson_n paraphrase_v thus_o primi_fw-la in_o comp_n theol._n explic_a praecepti_fw-la primi_fw-la thou_o shall_v not_o bow_v down_o to_o
service_n now_o that_o he_o for_o bid_v they_o it_o be_v argue_v 1._o because_o he_o bid_v the_o church_n governor_n refuse_v they_o lest_o they_o shall_v marry_v 2._o he_o call_v this_o marriage_n a_o cast_v off_o their_o first_o faith_n as_o all_o the_o father_n interpret_v it_o and_o tell_v they_o that_o it_o will_v procure_v their_o damnation_n now_o say_v he_o whether_o widow_n be_v esteem_v by_o the_o preacher_n to_o be_v more_o near_o and_o perfect_o consecrate_v to_o the_o divine_a service_n by_o the_o office_n of_o deaconess_n than_o man_n by_o priesthood_n it_o be_v expect_v he_o the_o dr._n shall_v declare_v now_o albeit_o this_o stale_a objection_n have_v receive_v variety_n of_o answer_n yet_o will_v not_o our_o antagonist_n take_v notice_n of_o any_o of_o they_o 1._o then_o the_o learned_a camero_n tell_v we_o 36._o in_o locum_fw-la vide_fw-la thes_n salmur_n de_fw-fr voto_fw-la con_fw-mi pt_v post_n sect._n 36._o the_o papist_n will_v have_v the_o apostle_n here_o to_o approve_v the_o vow_n of_o continency_n and_o disallow_v the_o solution_n of_o it_o upon_o any_o term_n but_o say_v he_o this_o must_v not_o be_v grant_v for_o the_o apostle_n discourse_v of_o such_o widow_n who_o have_v devote_v themselves_o to_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n promise_v the_o performance_n of_o those_o office_n which_o be_v proper_a for_o person_n so_o devote_v now_o see_v there_o be_v no_o legitimate_a pretence_n for_o such_o as_o be_v so_o addict_v to_o decline_v the_o further_a performance_n of_o these_o office_n but_o the_o necessity_n of_o marriage_n when_o they_o begin_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o as_o hesychius_n tell_v we_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o wax_v insolent_a and_o weary_a of_o this_o ministry_n to_o the_o church_n partly_o for_o the_o labour_n and_o partly_o for_o the_o seem_a vileness_n of_o it_o that_o they_o may_v become_v free_a they_o do_v pretend_v necessity_n of_o marriage_n as_o a_o covert_n of_o their_o pride_n and_o floath_n that_o therefore_o which_o the_o apostle_n reprove_v in_o they_o be_v not_o their_o marriage_n but_o the_o use_n of_o it_o as_o the_o veil_n of_o their_o idleness_n and_o thence_o it_o be_v that_o he_o accuse_v they_o first_o of_o their_o insolency_n in_o vilify_a that_o ministry_n in_o which_o they_o be_v engage_v and_o herein_o be_v the_o wisdom_n of_o the_o apostle_n conspicuous_a that_o lest_o he_o shall_v seem_v to_o condemn_v simple_o the_o marriage_n of_o such_o he_o first_o show_v wherein_o they_o have_v offend_v viz._n not_o in_o that_o they_o marry_v but_o that_o they_o do_v so_o out_o of_o such_o a_o end_n as_o know_v that_o such_o a_o pretence_n only_o be_v a_o just_a cause_n of_o reject_v the_o burden_n they_o have_v cast_v upon_o they_o for_o it_o can_v not_o be_v that_o she_o who_o be_v not_o svi_fw-la juris_fw-la but_o at_o the_o power_n of_o her_o husband_n can_v be_v able_a to_o perform_v the_o office_n of_o a_o deaconess_n as_o then_o be_v requisite_a now_o this_o interpretation_n be_v evident_o contradictory_n to_o that_o of_o the_o papist_n but_o that_o it_o be_v the_o truth_n i_o offer_v this_o argument_n to_o evince_v either_o the_o apostle_n inveigh_v against_o the_o pretence_n of_o marriage_n in_o these_o young_a widow_n or_o against_o their_o marriage_n not_o the_o latter_a therefore_o the_o former_a that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o latter_a i_o prove_v because_o the_o apostle_n bid_v they_o marry_v juniores_fw-la volo_fw-la nubere_fw-la verse_n 14._o you_o will_v say_v with_o the_o rhemist_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o other_o widow_n that_o have_v not_o yet_o enter_v into_o the_o church_n service_n not_o of_o those_o which_o have_v make_v this_o promise_n i_o answ_n it_o must_v be_v extend_v to_o they_o also_o as_o may_v be_v prove_v first_o in_o that_o he_o require_v that_o widow_n shall_v be_v blameless_a which_o condition_n can_v not_o well_o agree_v to_o young_a widow_n who_o be_v in_o danger_n of_o have_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d for_o do_v that_o which_o be_v blame-worthy_a in_o violate_v such_o a_o promise_n second_o he_o will_v have_v such_o widow_n refuse_v which_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o wax_v wanton_a against_o christ_n to_o marry_v and_o so_o violate_v their_o promise_n to_o the_o church_n but_o such_o be_v those_o young_a widow_n which_o have_v make_v this_o promise_n verse_n 11_o 12._o nor_o can_v it_o here_o be_v say_v that_o it_o can_v not_o be_v free_a for_o they_o to_o go_v back_o from_o their_o promise_n for_o 1._o there_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n assign_v of_o such_o a_o assertion_n see_v it_o must_v be_v make_v with_o this_o tacit_n limitation_n if_o the_o church_n will_v accept_v they_o and_o therefore_o if_o the_o church_n see_v cause_n to_o refuse_v they_o they_o be_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la absolve_v 2._o be_v it_o they_o have_v vow_v which_o can_v be_v prove_v yet_o that_o vow_n can_v be_v obligatory_a to_o performance_n which_o put_v a_o person_n in_o a_o real_a danger_n of_o wax_a wanton_a against_o christ_n of_o have_v the_o condemnation_n of_o violate_v his_o first_o faith_n it_o be_v absolute_o unlawful_a for_o any_o one_o to_o continue_v in_o such_o a_o condition_n and_o contrary_a to_o the_o apostle_n precept_n of_o abstain_v from_o all_o appearance_n of_o evil_n and_o therefore_o such_o a_o vow_n make_v to_o bind_v one_o in_o such_o a_o state_n be_v a_o bond_n of_o iniquity_n and_o consequent_o null_a three_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v such_o widow_n refuse_v who_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v idle_a tatler_n busy_a body_n night-wanderer_n etc._n etc._n but_o such_o be_v young_a widow_n already_o make_v deaconess_n verse_n 13._o four_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v thing_n so_o manage_v as_o that_o no_o occasion_n may_v be_v give_v to_o the_o adversary_n to_o speak_v reproachful_o but_o this_o can_v not_o be_v if_o young_a widow_n already_o deaconess_n shall_v not_o be_v refuse_v as_o well_o as_o other_o verse_n 14._o five_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v that_o alter_v which_o may_v be_v a_o occasion_n of_o turn_v young_a woman_n aside_o unto_o satan_n but_o such_o be_v the_o keep_n of_o they_o in_o that_o condition_n and_o have_v be_v already_o as_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o v._n 15._o for_o some_o viz._n of_o these_o young_a widow_n be_v already_o turn_v aside_o unto_o satan_n but_o you_o will_v say_v that_o the_o apostle_n plain_o say_v they_o be_v therefore_o blame_v worthy_a because_o they_o have_v leave_v their_o first_o faith_n i_o answ_n 1._o they_o be_v therefore_o blame-worthy_a because_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d out_o of_o pride_n sloth_n and_o insolency_n they_o have_v break_v their_o faith_n not_o if_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d they_o have_v leave_v this_o office_n as_o be_v suppose_v to_o have_v make_v this_o promise_n only_o upon_o condition_n of_o the_o continuance_n of_o the_o gift_n of_o continency_n see_v to_o make_v it_o absolute_o we_o have_v prove_v unlawful_a 2._o by_o first_o faith_n we_o may_v understand_v the_o faith_n they_o take_v upon_o they_o when_o they_o first_o become_v christian_n which_o because_o it_o bind_v they_o not_o to_o be_v insolent_a but_o humble_a and_o ready_a to_o do_v the_o mean_a office_n of_o love_n to_o their_o fellow-member_n not_o to_o be_v slothful_a but_o to_o be_v diligent_a in_o god_n service_n they_o that_o be_v guilty_a of_o these_o crime_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v make_v null_a their_o faith_n see_v it_o will_v be_v of_o no_o virtue_n nor_o efficacy_n to_o their_o soul_n 2._o other_o have_v long_o ago_o answer_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v to_o be_v understand_v not_o of_o any_o promise_n make_v to_o the_o church_n but_o to_o god_n or_o christ_n upon_o their_o entrance_n into_o christianity_n and_o tell_v we_o that_o these_o woman_n have_v haply_o move_v with_o sorrow_n for_o their_o husband_n death_n cast_v themselves_o into_o the_o college_n of_o widow_n and_o afterward_o find_v themselves_o not_o to_o have_v the_o gift_n of_o continence_n but_o to_o want_v the_o remedy_n of_o marriage_n lest_o they_o shall_v be_v brand_v with_o the_o note_n of_o infamy_n inconstancy_n and_o lightness_n in_o depart_v from_o their_o purpose_n they_o choose_v rather_o to_o fall_v off_o from_o christ_n unto_o gentilism_n and_o marry_n whence_o they_o be_v condemn_v of_o forsake_v their_o first_o faith_n not_o simple_o in_o that_o they_o will_v marry_v but_o that_o they_o will_v do_v it_o cum_fw-la abnegatione_fw-la fidei_fw-la &_o christianae_n religionis_fw-la obj._n but_o you_o will_v say_v if_o they_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o marry_v what_o necessity_n of_o do_v it_o with_o jew_n or_o pagan_n answ_n because_o have_v they_o marry_v to_o christian_n they_o will_v continual_o have_v be_v twit_v by_o they_o for_o their_o levity_n and_o inconstancy_n for_o their_o negligence_n in_o the_o office_n
of_o the_o church_n gad_v abroad_o etc._n etc._n yea_o and_o be_v such_o can_v scarce_o hope_v to_o procure_v a_o husband_n among_o they_o and_o therefore_o that_o they_o may_v not_o fail_v of_o they_o and_o that_o they_o may_v live_v more_o free_a from_o these_o taunt_n and_o disgrace_n they_o reject_v their_o office_n and_o faith_n together_o now_o that_o they_o do_v so_o as_o it_o be_v probable_a from_o the_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o signify_v excutere_fw-la habenas_fw-la christi_fw-la so_o be_v it_o more_o than_o so_o from_o the_o 15_o v._n which_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o have_v turn_v aside_o to_o satan_n a_o phrase_n in_o scripture_n use_v to_o denote_v apostasy_n from_o christ_n and_o god_n for_o as_o turn_v from_o the_o power_n of_o satan_n to_o god_n be_v a_o description_n of_o turn_v christian_n so_o apostate_n be_v say_v to_o be_v transfer_v again_o into_o satan_n kingdom_n luke_n 11.13_o and_o to_o turn_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d john_n 6.66_o as_o here_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d heb._n 12.13_o 1_o tim._n 1.6.4.4_o as_o here_o also_o it_o be_v say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d last_o that_o it_o can_v be_v understand_v of_o a_o solemn_a vow_n of_o continency_n join_v with_o a_o abnegation_n of_o the_o marry_a state_n beside_z what_o i_o have_v say_v before_o be_v prove_v 1._o in_o that_o the_o apostle_n deny_v that_o he_o will_v cast_v a_o snare_n upon_o any_o that_o be_v lay_v a_o necessity_n on_o they_o to_o contain_v unmarried_a but_o on_o the_o contrary_n give_v this_o general_a axiom_n that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o marry_v than_o to_o burn_v and_o therefore_o it_o be_v altogether_o unlikely_a that_o he_o will_v now_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o must_v continue_v though_o he_o find_v they_o have_v not_o the_o gift_n of_o continence_n under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n no_o rather_o he_o will_v have_v admonish_v they_o to_o repent_v of_o their_o rash_a vow_n and_o tell_v they_o with_o epiphanius_n tradit_fw-la epiph._n de_fw-fr tradit_fw-la who_o be_v clear_o we_o as_o to_o this_o that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o have_v the_o guilt_n of_o one_o sin_n viz._n a_o rash_a vow_n then_o of_o many_o viz._n continual_a burn_n call_v the_o first_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o a_o fault_n to_o which_o he_o enjoin_v penance_n the_o other_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d or_o that_o which_o will_v bring_v damnation_n 2._o if_o the_o vow_n of_o continence_n be_v the_o first_o faith_n here_o speak_v of_o then_o may_v not_o any_o woman_n or_o widow_n make_v this_o vow_n by_o the_o apostle_n charge_v till_o she_o be_v sixty_o year_n old_a 15._o sess_n 25._o c._n 15._o which_o how_o be_v it_o this_o day_n practise_v in_o the_o romish_a church_n since_o the_o trent_n council_n admit_v they_o at_o sixteen_o let_v they_o then_o confess_v that_o this_o text_n speak_v not_o of_o votary_n or_o else_o that_o they_o sin_n against_o the_o apostle_n precept_n by_o warrant_n of_o their_o infallible_a general_a council_n for_o it_o be_v evident_a the_o apostle_n bid_v they_o not_o admit_v a_o widow_n under_o sixty_o for_o fear_n of_o her_o incontinency_n and_o for_o that_o reason_n require_v they_o to_o refuse_v those_o that_o be_v young_a than_o so_o i_o confess_v beside_o bellarm_n who_o be_v very_o frivolous_a and_o every_o where_o confute_v estius_n tell_v we_o 1._o that_o there_o be_v not_o the_o same_o reason_n for_o widow_n as_o for_o virgin_n for_o these_o have_v not_o feel_v the_o pleasure_n of_o due_a benevolence_n be_v not_o so_o much_o tempt_v as_o widow_n but_o to_o this_o 1._o it_o be_v evident_a you_o admit_v even_o widow_n long_o before_o this_o time_n yea_o at_o any_o time_n 2._o see_v marriage_n be_v ordain_v for_o the_o abate_n of_o this_o fire_n of_o lust_n sure_o it_o will_v somewhat_o do_v so_o not_o more_o inflame_v it_o and_o it_o be_v unconceivable_a that_o woman_n though_o thirty_o or_o forty_o once_o marry_v shall_v be_v more_o prone_a to_o lust_n than_o those_o of_o sixteen_o or_o eighteen_o never_o marry_v 3._o be_v it_o that_o there_o be_v some_o difference_n yet_o sure_o not_o such_o as_o will_v put_v virgin_n out_o of_o danger_n especial_o when_o the_o apostle_n tell_v we_o 1_o cor._n 7._o that_o there_o may_v be_v need_n and_o therefore_o he_o will_v not_o put_v a_o snare_n upon_o they_o 2._o he_o tell_v we_o that_o they_o have_v no_o cloister_n to_o be_v immure_v in_o then_o as_o there_o be_v now_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v more_o obnoxious_a to_o this_o fail_v answ_n by_o no_o mean_n when_o it_o must_v be_v grant_v that_o church_n discipline_n be_v more_o strict_a then_o christianity_n more_o lively_a and_o better_o practise_v then_o now_o 2._o solitariness_n do_v not_o help_v this_o disease_n but_o increase_v it_o rather_o 3._o that_o their_o cloister_n do_v not_o abridge_v they_o of_o occasion_n of_o lust_n appear_v by_o their_o frequent_a pregnancy_n and_o the_o above_o cite_v author_n neither_o ought_v they_o to_o change_v the_o apostle_n precept_n upon_o such_o sleight_n and_o frivolous_a ground_n in_o a_o word_n to_o conclude_v why_o may_v not_o this_o sense_n of_o the_o word_n pass_v for_o currant_n you_o admit_v young_a widow_n into_o this_o office_n upon_o their_o promise_n of_o continue_v in_o that_o estate_n when_o alas_o they_o be_v in_o danger_n to_o wax_v wanton_a against_o christ_n by_o this_o mean_n and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v so_o to_o marry_v which_o course_n of_o you_o will_v bring_v condemnation_n upon_o they_o this_o wax_a wanton_a be_v a_o evident_a breach_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o obedience_n to_o the_o command_v of_o christ_n which_o they_o make_v at_o their_o entrance_n into_o christianity_n and_o whereas_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o his_o exposition_n which_o make_v it_o plead_v for_o their_o vow_n of_o continency_n be_v not_o contradict_v by_o any_o of_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n bishop_n hall_n will_v tell_v he_o p._n 725._o i_o have_v think_v i_o have_v read_v in_o holy_a athanasius_n woe_n to_o you_o that_o make_v void_a the_o first_o faith_n of_o baptism_n i_o think_v that_o st._n jerom_n have_v say_v in_o the_o preface_n to_o the_o ep._n to_o titus_n they_o be_v not_o worthy_a of_o belief_n qui_fw-la primam_fw-la fidem_fw-la baptismi_fw-la irritam_fw-la fecerunt_fw-la who_o have_v make_v void_a their_o first_o faith_n in_o baptism_n now_o if_o a_o contrary_a interpretation_n be_v not_o a_o contradiction_n to_o the_o sense_n contend_v for_o i_o may_v say_v as_o well_o that_o the_o interpretation_n of_o these_o two_o father_n be_v never_o contradict_v by_o any_o of_o the_o rest_n but_o it_o be_v the_o consent_n of_o antiquity_n in_o which_o our_o adversary_n vaunt_v himself_o sect._n 12_o and_o 1._o 216._o m._n c._n p._n 216._o as_o for_o the_o council_n of_o eliberis_n which_o if_o we_o may_v believe_v he_o 33._o can._n 33._o absolute_o command_v to_o bishop_n priest_n deacon_n subdeacons_n to_o abstain_v from_o their_o wife_n and_o not_o to_o beget_v child_n let_v it_o be_v consider_v 119._o melchior_n canus_n l_o 5._o de_fw-fr locis_fw-la c._n 4._o binius_fw-la p._n 239._o bellar._n l._n 2._o de_fw-la imag._n c_o 9_o baron_fw-fr ad_fw-la an._n 56._o hum._n 119._o 1._o that_o when_o the_o decree_n of_o this_o council_n be_v urge_v by_o we_o against_o image_n they_o present_o deride_v we_o as_o produce_v a_o council_n of_o nineteen_o bishop_n meet_v in_o a_o corner_n of_o the_o world_n tell_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o erroneous_a council_n border_v upon_o novatianism_n and_o manifest_o void_a and_o null_n in_o many_o thing_n viz._n in_o those_o in_o which_o it_o thwart_v their_o superstition_n now_o if_o these_o thing_n be_v true_a what_o advantage_n can_v they_o have_v from_o these_o nineteen_o bishop_n may_v not_o we_o as_o lawful_o reject_v they_o as_o the_o romanist_n 2._o the_o canon_n do_v not_o command_v this_o abstinence_n to_o bishop_n and_o to_o other_o sacred_a person_n absolute_o but_o only_o in_o the_o time_n of_o their_o ministration_n or_o whilst_o it_o be_v their_o turn_n to_o assist_v at_o the_o altar_n which_o thing_n be_v determine_v in_o many_o counsel_n and_o be_v not_o in_o the_o least_o manner_n contrary_a to_o we_o 3._o the_o word_n of_o the_o council_n run_v exact_o contrary_a to_o what_o you_o have_v give_v we_o even_o thus_o this_o council_n have_v think_v good_a not_o to_o command_v but_o whole_o to_o forbid_v bishop_n priest_n etc._n etc._n to_o abstain_v from_o their_o wife_n and_o not_o to_o beget_v child_n and_o so_o it_o will_v be_v parallel_n to_o the_o canon_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o make_v in_o opposition_n to_o the_o condemner_n of_o due_a benevolence_n in_o priest_n another_o council_n produce_v by_o he_o be_v the_o seven_o of_o
let_v he_o receive_v it_o nor_o will_v the_o apostle_n have_v be_v so_o nice_a in_o his_o persuade_v it_o and_o again_o christ_n say_v this_o that_o every_o one_o may_v consider_v his_o strength_n whether_o he_o be_v able_a to_o satisfy_v this_o command_n of_o virginity_n and_o chastity_n for_o our_o ability_n ought_v to_o be_v consider_v that_o so_o he_o that_o can_v receive_v it_o may_z st._n austin_n 30._o lib._n 1._o de_fw-fr nupt_a &_o concup_n ad_fw-la voler_n c._n 16._o id_fw-la ad_fw-la pollent_fw-la in_o cap._n 20_o leviticus_n pt_v 3._o cur_n past_a c._n 30._o this_o virtue_n of_o such_o excellent_a continence_n he_o that_o can_v receive_v let_v he_o receive_v it_o and_o again_o the_o apostle_n counsel_v celibacy_n to_o he_o that_o can_v receive_v it_o hesyc_a we_o do_v not_o require_v any_o thing_n beyond_o man_n power_n but_o only_o what_o be_v possible_a viz._n virginity_n of_o he_o to_o who_o it_o be_v possble_a and_o gregory_n he_o that_o be_v truth_n itself_o say_v all_o can_v receive_v this_o word_n and_o again_o the_o pastor_n that_o be_v single_a be_v to_o be_v admonish_v that_o if_o they_o can_v withstand_v the_o storm_n of_o temptation_n without_o difficulty_n of_o shipwreck_n they_o betake_v themselves_o to_o the_o haven_n of_o wedlock_n to_o these_o you_o may_v add_v ignat._n ep._n 8._o ad_fw-la smyrnenses_n cyril_n l._n 1._o ep._n 11._o si_fw-mi perseverare_fw-la nolunt_fw-la aut_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la nubant_fw-la lactan._n l._n 6._o inst_z c._n 23._o chrysost_n l._n de_fw-fr virg._n &_o homil._n 19_o in_o 1_o cor._n bernard_n in_o serm._n de_fw-fr conver_n ad_fw-la cler._n c._n 29._o &_o amrbose_n cite_v in_o jure_fw-la canon_n c._n integritas_fw-la 32._o qu._n 2._o yea_o bell_n armine_z himself_z c._n 34._o resp_n ad_fw-la 19_o chap._n xviii_o schism_n be_v a_o unnecessary_a separation_n sect_n 1._o our_o separation_n necessary_a by_o reason_n 1_o of_o many_o thing_n unjust_o require_v to_o be_v believe_v 2_o to_o be_v practise_v by_o we_o sect_n 2_o 3._o that_o suppose_v these_o doctrine_n to_o be_v innovation_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o separate_v sect_n 4._o the_o result_n of_o mr._n c_o '_o s._n position_n ibid._n his_o pretension_n to_o make_v his_o assertion_n reasonable_a consider_v sect_n 5_o 6_o 7._o the_o church_n of_o rome_n schismatical_a sect_n 8._o the_o argument_n to_o the_o contrary_n answer_v sect_n 9_o 10_o 11._o we_o be_v at_o length_n arrive_v at_o our_o last_o sect._n 1_o and_o large_a task_n to_o wipe_v off_o that_o odious_a name_n of_o schism_n which_o he_o most_o irrational_o cast_v upon_o we_o now_o in_o this_o business_n mr._n c._n as_o he_o be_v more_o voluminous_a so_o be_v he_o more_o weak_a and_o more_o confuse_a and_o therefore_o i_o will_v not_o follow_v he_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d but_o draw_v up_o some_o thesis_fw-la or_o proposition_n and_o confront_v they_o to_o his_o assertion_n and_o then_o return_v a_o answer_n to_o his_o argument_n 1._o proposition_n 1._o proposition_n therefore_o schism_n be_v a_o unnecessary_a separation_n that_o it_o be_v a_o separation_n sect._n 2_o the_o very_a import_n of_o the_o word_n assure_v we_o that_o it_o be_v a_o unnecessary_a one_o appear_v because_o nothing_o can_v be_v sinful_a which_o be_v necessary_a with_o a_o necessity_n not_o introduce_v upon_o myself_o through_o my_o own_o default_n and_o consequent_o where_o cause_n of_o schism_n be_v necessary_a there_o not_o he_o that_o separate_v but_o he_o that_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o separation_n be_v the_o schismatic_a for_o schism_n there_o can_v be_v in_o leave_v the_o communion_n of_o any_o church_n 17._o chill_a p._n 17._o unless_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o continue_v in_o it_o man_n can_v be_v oblige_v by_o man_n but_o to_o what_o either_o formal_o or_o virtual_o he_o be_v oblige_v by_o god_n for_o all_o just_a power_n be_v from_o god_n god_n the_o eternal_a truth_n neither_o can_v nor_o will_v oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v any_o the_o least_o or_o the_o most_o innocent_a falsehood_n to_o be_v a_o divine_a truth_n that_o be_v to_o err_v nor_o to_o profess_v a_o know_a error_n which_o be_v to_o lie_v so_o that_o see_v you_o require_v the_o belief_n of_o error_n among_o the_o condition_n of_o your_o communion_n our_o obligation_n to_o communicate_v with_o you_o cease_v yea_o we_o be_v oblige_v not_o to_o communicate_v with_o you_o upon_o these_o term_n which_o be_v evident_o sinful_a and_o so_o the_o imputation_n of_o schism_n to_o we_o vanish_v to_o nothing_o but_o it_o fall_v heavy_a upon_o your_o own_o head_n for_o make_v our_o separation_n from_o you_o just_a and_o necessary_a by_o require_v unnecessary_a and_o unlawful_a condition_n of_o your_o communion_n thus_o be_v not_o content_a with_o christ_n the_o mediator_n of_o mankind_n you_o require_v we_o to_o hold_v the_o saint_n depart_v to_o be_v our_o mediator_n beside_o the_o head_n christ_n jesus_n you_o require_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v the_o head_n and_o husband_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n by_o divine_a right_n beside_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o cross_n you_o force_v upon_o we_o that_o of_o the_o altar_n as_o a_o true_a and_o proper_a sacrifice_n beside_o the_o blood_n of_o christ_n you_o command_v we_o to_o expect_v our_o cleanse_n from_o the_o suffering_n of_o martyr_n beside_o the_o torment_n of_o hell_n which_o be_v threaten_v to_o the_o wicked_a you_o require_v we_o to_o assert_v purgatorian_a torment_n to_o be_v inflict_v on_o the_o faithful_a beside_o the_o worship_n of_o the_o great_a god_n you_o require_v we_o to_o adore_v and_o that_o with_o the_o worship_n due_a and_o proper_a unto_o he_o the_o holy_a sacrament_n beside_o the_o holy_a scripture_n you_o require_v we_o to_o receive_v with_o equal_a authority_n certain_a book_n apocryphal_a and_o tradition_n like_v unto_o they_o with_o the_o same_o faith_n we_o give_v to_o these_o holy_a scripture_n the_o veneration_n of_o image_n the_o transubstantiation_n of_o the_o element_n into_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n you_o require_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o church_n power_n in_o mutilate_v the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o lord_n supper_n in_o enjoin_v the_o celebration_n of_o public_a service_n in_o a_o tongue_n unknown_a in_o impose_v perpetual_a celibacy_n upon_o such_o as_o take_v upon_o they_o holy_a order_n you_o require_v we_o to_o acknowledge_v these_o thing_n you_o have_v establish_v in_o your_o counsel_n and_o thunder_v your_o anathemaes_n against_o all_o those_o that_o will_v not_o yield_v their_o assent_n unto_o they_o so_o that_o without_o the_o belief_n of_o these_o thing_n it_o be_v impossible_a for_o we_o to_o keep_v in_o the_o communion_n of_o your_o church_n nay_o the_o denial_n of_o any_o of_o these_o article_n exclude_v we_o at_o least_o in_o your_o esteem_n not_o only_o from_o the_o roman_a but_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o make_v it_o unlawful_a for_o you_o to_o communicate_v with_o we_o the_o confession_n of_o these_o thing_n you_o exact_v from_o we_o with_o the_o great_a rigour_n and_o that_o as_o the_o true_a catholic_n faith_n potest_fw-la bulla_n pii_fw-la quarti_fw-la extra_fw-la quam_fw-la ne●o_fw-la salvus_fw-la esse_fw-la potest_fw-la without_o believe_v of_o which_o there_o be_v no_o salvation_n to_o any_o man_n continual_o proclaim_v that_o you_o esteem_v they_o heretic_n enemy_n of_o christ_n and_o worse_o than_o infidel_n that_o reject_v these_o opinion_n or_o any_o of_o they_o nay_o which_o be_v worst_a of_o all_o in_o make_v of_o these_o and_o such_o like_a decree_n you_o give_v out_o that_o you_o be_v infallible_a so_o that_o to_o question_v any_o one_o of_o they_o be_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la to_o thrust_v ourselves_o out_o of_o your_o communion_n since_o therefore_o you_o require_v the_o belief_n of_o these_o untruth_n as_o necessary_a condition_n of_o communion_n you_o evident_o free_v we_o from_o the_o guilt_n of_o schism_n in_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o you_o upon_o such_o term_n again_o we_o confident_o assert_v sect._n 3_o there_o can_v be_v no_o necessity_n of_o communicate_v with_o other_o in_o wicked_a action_n nay_o there_o be_v a_o necessity_n of_o separation_n when_o the_o performance_n of_o they_o be_v require_v a_o necessity_n of_o get_v out_o of_o babylon_n when_o we_o can_v stay_v there_o 18.4_o rev._n 18.4_o but_o we_o must_v be_v partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o evident_o to_o practice_v what_o i_o esteem_v and_o look_v upon_o as_o forbid_v by_o god_n be_v to_o be_v guilty_a of_o damn_a hypocrisy_n and_o wilful_a disobedience_n against_o he_o see_v therefore_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n require_v of_o we_o the_o practice_n of_o such_o unlawful_a action_n as_o the_o adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n which_o be_v idolatry_n the_o invocation_n of_o saint_n veneration_n of_o image_n petition_n for_o deliverance_n of_o soul_n from_o purgatory_n which_o be_v superstition_n yea_o and_o enjoin_v her_o
we_o have_v do_v it_o legal_o and_o with_o sufficient_a authority_n due_a moderation_n and_o other_o condition_n requisite_a yea_o we_o have_v the_o implicit_a consent_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n which_o do_v with_o we_o reject_v these_o law_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n this_o we_o constant_o plead_v in_o our_o own_o behalf_n and_o yet_o we_o must_v be_v schismatic_n though_o neither_o all_o nor_o any_o of_o these_o plea_n can_v be_v invalidate_v again_o say_v he_o they_o acknowledge_v themselves_o subject_a to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o esteem_v this_o patriarchical_a church_n ibid._n ibid._n the_o only_a orthodox_n universal_a church_n and_o a_o separation_n from_o its_o pastor_n to_o beformal_a schism_n ans_fw-fr and_o will_v not_o the_o worshipper_n of_o the_o beast_n do_v so_o to_o he_o shall_v the_o grecian_a church_n entertain_v this_o faith_n will_v you_o esteem_v it_o any_o argument_n to_o prove_v they_o guilty_a of_o the_o crime_n of_o schism_n because_o former_o they_o esteem_v your_o church_n heretical_a and_o your_o supreme_a pastor_n a_o usurper_n if_o so_o then_o must_v man_n be_v schismatic_n whether_o they_o separate_v from_o you_o or_o join_v in_o communion_n with_o you_o if_o not_o i_o pray_v you_o why_o but_o because_o it_o be_v their_o duty_n to_o change_v their_o opinion_n in_o these_o particular_n which_o be_v evident_o our_o plea_n we_o find_v that_o what_o you_o call_v ancient_a doctrine_n from_o the_o beginning_n be_v not_o hold_v what_o you_o require_v to_o be_v embrace_v as_o a_o truth_n be_v evident_o condemn_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n and_o when_o you_o have_v talk_v yourself_o hoarse_a about_o the_o nature_n of_o schism_n you_o will_v still_o labour_v in_o the_o fire_n till_o you_o have_v prove_v that_o we_o be_v under_o a_o obligation_n to_o believe_v those_o doctrine_n as_o the_o truth_n of_o god_n which_o we_o reject_v as_o contrary_a to_o he_o reveal_v will_n which_o i_o expect_v shall_v be_v perform_v at_o latter_a lammas_n you_o tell_v we_o from_o st._n austin_n 90._o mr._n c._n p._n 292._o sect_n 11._o reply_v p._n 89_o 90._o that_o there_o be_v no_o just_a cause_n of_o separate_n from_o the_o communion_n of_o all_o nation_n or_o the_o whole_a world_n to_o which_o it_o be_v answer_v by_o bishop_n bramhal_o let_v he_o always_o bring_v such_o proof_n which_o concern_v not_o we_o but_o make_v direct_o against_o he_o it_o be_v they_o who_o have_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n grecian_a russian_a armenian_a abissine_n protestant_n by_o their_o censure_n we_o have_v make_v no_o absolute_a separation_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n itself_o but_o suppose_v it_o have_v be_v so_o the_o schism_n lie_v at_o the_o door_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n see_v she_o separate_v first_o from_o the_o pure_a primitive_a church_n which_o be_v before_o she_o not_o local_o but_o moral_o well_o but_o to_o say_v thus_o 294._o mr._n c._n p._n 294._o and_o to_o acknowledge_v the_o actual_a departure_n be_v we_o and_o yet_o we_o be_v not_o schismatic_n as_o leave_v the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n rather_o than_o the_o church_n be_v to_o act_v the_o donatist_n answ_n yes_o by_o all_o mean_n because_o the_o donatist_n pretend_v not_o to_o find_v any_o thing_n in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n 6._o see_v dally_n apol._n c._n 6._o from_o which_o they_o separate_v contrary_a to_o their_o belief_n both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o teach_v the_o same_o faith_n read_v the_o same_o book_n exercise_v the_o same_o service_n well_o but_o the_o donatist_n derive_v the_o word_n catholic_n not_o from_o the_o universality_n of_o nation_n but_o integrity_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v most_o apparent_o the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o esteem_v none_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n but_o those_o which_o embrace_v her_o doctrine_n entire_o but_o concern_v not_o we_o who_o esteem_v they_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n that_o differ_v from_o we_o see_v bishop_n bramhal_o rep._n p._n 281._o chap._n xix_o our_o three_o proposition_n that_o all_o schism_n be_v not_o damnable_a limit_v sect_n 1._o prove_v from_o divers_a instance_n sect_n 2._o mr._n c_o '_o s._n argument_n answer_v and_o 1_o his_o similitude_n from_o civil_a government_n consider_v sect_n 3._o 2_o his_o argument_n from_o the_o division_n of_o the_o schismatic_a from_o christ_n body_n sect_n 5._o from_o the_o father_n as_o st._n chrysostome_n st._n austin_n st._n pacian_a st._n denis_n and_o irenaeus_n sect_n 7._o his_o inference_n from_o hence_o that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o schismatical_a consider_v sect_n 8._o my_o three_o proposition_n shall_v be_v this_o proposition_n 3_o proposition_n that_o all_o schism_n be_v not_o damnable_a sect._n 1_o nor_o do_v it_o always_o carry_v such_o obliquity_n with_o it_o as_o to_o exclude_v the_o person_n thus_o offend_v from_o god_n favour_n before_o i_o enter_v upon_o the_o proof_n of_o this_o assertion_n i_o shall_v propose_v this_o one_o distinction_n viz._n that_o schism_n may_v be_v either_o through_o weakness_n viz._n in_o person_n desirous_a to_o know_v the_o truth_n and_o earnest_a endeavourer_n after_o it_o who_o notwithstanding_o through_o the_o weakness_n of_o their_o intellectual_n or_o prejudices_fw-la from_o friend_n or_o education_n or_o such_o like_a cause_n miss_v their_o aim_n or_o wilfulness_n as_o it_o be_v in_o person_n who_o be_v either_o negligent_a as_o to_o their_o inquiry_n into_o truth_n or_o act_v against_o the_o conviction_n of_o their_o conscience_n now_o for_o these_o latter_a sort_n of_o schismatic_n i_o grant_v their_o separation_n to_o be_v damnable_a but_o for_o the_o weak_a brother_n the_o person_n or_o church_n which_o out_o of_o frailty_n only_o be_v schismatical_a i_o undertake_v to_o be_v a_o advocate_n and_o free_a such_o though_o not_o from_o crime_n yet_o upon_o general_a repentance_n for_o unknown_a sin_n from_o the_o sad_a sentence_n of_o damnation_n for_o 1._o in_o that_o combustion_n which_o arise_v in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n sect._n 2_o touch_v the_o celebration_n of_o the_o easter_n festival_n the_o west_n separate_v and_o refuse_v communion_n with_o the_o east_n for_o many_o year_n together_o now_o here_o one_o part_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n must_v necessary_o be_v account_v schismatic_n for_o either_o the_o western_a church_n have_v sufficient_a ground_n for_o separation_n and_o then_o evident_o the_o eastern_a be_v causal_o the_o schismatic_a or_o it_o be_v otherwise_o and_o then_o the_o western_a church_n must_v take_v the_o imputation_n to_o itself_o as_o separate_v without_o cause_n and_o yet_o that_o both_o continue_a part_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o be_v not_o cut_v off_o from_o christ_n upon_o this_o account_n who_o dare_v deny_v who_o can_v without_o the_o great_a breach_n of_o charity_n thus_o in_o the_o many_o schism_n which_o have_v happen_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n about_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o some_o of_o which_o the_o best_a man_n know_v not_o who_o to_o cleave_v unto_o will_v any_o charitable_a papist_n say_v that_o all_o who_o die_v on_o the_o err_a part_n be_v necessary_o damn_v again_o the_o myriad_n of_o jew_n that_o believe_v in_o christ_n and_o yet_o be_v zealous_a of_o the_o law_n be_v guilty_a of_o this_o crime_n as_o require_v such_o condition_n of_o their_o communion_n which_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o have_v require_v and_o exclude_v man_n from_o it_o upon_o term_n unequal_a and_o yet_o to_o say_v that_o all_o these_o myriad_o who_o through_o weakness_n and_o infirmity_n thus_o err_v do_v perish_v and_o that_o their_o believe_v in_o christ_n serve_v they_o to_o no_o other_o end_n but_o in_o the_o infinity_n of_o their_o torment_n to_o upbraid_v they_o with_o hypocrisy_n and_o heresy_n be_v so_o harsh_a a_o speech_n that_o i_o shall_v not_o be_v very_o hasty_a to_o pronounce_v it_o yea_o further_o let_v but_o a_o man_n consider_v the_o variety_n of_o man_n principle_n their_o constitution_n and_o education_n temper_n and_o distemper_n weakness_n degree_n of_o light_n and_o understanding_n the_o many_o several_a determination_n that_o be_v make_v even_o by_o most_o church_n the_o various_a judgement_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a touch_v many_o of_o they_o i_o say_v let_v these_o thing_n be_v consider_v and_o then_o let_v any_o man_n tell_v i_o whether_o it_o be_v consistent_a with_o the_o goodness_n of_o that_o god_n who_o be_v so_o acquaint_v with_o our_o infirmity_n as_o that_o he_o pardon_v many_o thing_n in_o which_o our_o will_n indeed_o have_v the_o least_o but_o yet_o some_o share_n to_o condemn_v those_o to_o eternal_a torment_n who_o after_o diligent_a enquiry_n into_o the_o truth_n err_v in_o some_o little_a punctilio_n determine_v by_o the_o church_n and_o think_v themselves_o bind_v to_o deny_v obedience_n
to_o she_o in_o they_o albeit_o this_o error_n have_v nothing_o of_o the_o will_n in_o it_o what_o i_o have_v here_o say_v i_o refer_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o sober_a and_o impartial_a man_n with_o who_o i_o be_o confident_a these_o instance_n with_o a_o hundred_o of_o the_o like_a nature_n will_v more_o prevail_v then_o any_o thing_n that_o on_o the_o contrary_n be_v tender_v by_o mr._n c._n and_o come_v now_o to_o be_v consider_v 1._o sect._n 3_o then_o he_o give_v we_o a_o similitude_n from_o civil_a government_n wherein_o to_o entertain_v principle_n which_o if_o put_v in_o practice_n will_v withdraw_v subject_n from_o their_o due_a obedience_n be_v a_o offence_n of_o a_o high_a nature_n 228._o mr._n c._n p._n 228._o but_o the_o actual_a cantonize_a of_o a_o kingdom_n and_o the_o raise_n in_o it_o court_v or_o judicature_n independent_a on_o and_o opposite_a to_o the_o common_a tribunal_n of_o the_o country_n be_v the_o utmost_a of_o all_o crime_n and_o both_o the_o seducer_n and_o seduce_v here_o be_v pursue_v by_o arm_n as_o the_o worst_a of_o enemy_n it_o be_v so_o say_v he_o in_o the_o church_n who_o unity_n we_o be_v teach_v to_o believe_v for_o if_o unity_n than_o order_n than_o subordination_n of_o governor_n with_o a_o etc._n etc._n at_o the_o end_n of_o they_o to_o signify_v the_o lord_n know_v what_o what_o therefore_o be_v the_o great_a sin_n against_o the_o fundamental_a constitution_n of_o the_o church_n but_o schism_n a_o dissolve_v the_o communion_n and_o connexion_n that_o the_o member_n of_o this_o great_a body_n have_v among_o themselves_o with_o relation_n to_o the_o whole_a answ_n this_o confuse_a stuff_n can_v very_o well_o be_v deal_v withal_o especial_o in_o the_o lump_n 1._o therefore_o as_o to_o his_o example_n in_o civil_a government_n i_o answ_n 1._o that_o the_o case_n can_v easy_o be_v the_o same_o for_o seldom_o be_v it_o that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o conflict_n of_o reason_n with_o reason_n authority_n with_o authority_n among_o man_n learn_v in_o those_o matter_n but_o suppose_v it_o shall_v ever_o happen_v to_o be_v so_o as_o that_o the_o most_o learned_a lawyer_n can_v scarce_o tell_v how_o to_o decide_v the_o case_n will_v a_o gracious_a king_n think_v you_o present_o condemn_v all_o those_o to_o the_o utmost_a severity_n who_o in_o such_o case_n after_o consultation_n and_o deliberation_n due_o make_v shall_v by_o reason_n of_o some_o prejudices_fw-la or_o weakness_n in_o reason_v be_v induce_v to_o think_v it_o their_o duty_n to_o follow_v the_o mutinous_a party_n put_v the_o case_n some_o lead_a papist_n shall_v rebel_v and_o seek_v to_o reduce_v our_o nation_n to_o the_o government_n of_o the_o pope_n by_o force_n of_o arm_n albeit_o the_o case_n be_v not_o so_o difficult_a but_o it_o may_v easy_o be_v resolve_v for_o his_o majesty_n against_o the_o pope_n shall_v those_o incendiary_n of_o kingdom_n i_o mean_v the_o jesuit_n and_o other_o of_o your_o priest_n by_o all_o the_o argument_n they_o can_v invent_v solicit_v the_o illiterate_a papist_n of_o this_o nation_n to_o side_n with_o this_o rebellion_n as_o too_o frequent_o they_o have_v do_v answer_v all_o their_o demur_n and_o propound_v to_o they_o indulgence_n and_o deliverance_n from_o purgatory_n and_o the_o meritoriousness_n of_o the_o fact_n and_o such_o like_a motive_n which_o shall_v be_v effectual_a in_o they_o all_o and_o these_o delude_a soul_n thus_o think_v it_o their_o duty_n to_o obey_v their_o spiritual_a guide_n and_o have_v no_o other_o mean_n to_o inform_v they_o better_o shall_v make_v a_o party_n in_o a_o insurrection_n will_v you_o not_o put_v in_o one_o plea_n for_o the_o excuse_n of_o these_o person_n will_v you_o think_v it_o meet_v without_o respect_n of_o person_n to_o make_v a_o general_a slaughter_n of_o they_o all_o in_o cold_a blood_n i_o be_o sure_a the_o bowel_n of_o our_o gracious_a sovereign_n will_v yern_v towards_o they_o and_o must_v the_o bowel_n of_o god_n be_v more_o contract_v shall_v we_o charge_v he_o with_o such_o austerity_n as_o be_v hardly_o incident_a to_o humane_a frailty_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d it_o be_v true_a a_o great_a severity_n may_v sometime_o be_v necessary_a in_o these_o case_n but_o still_o upon_o political_a reflection_n which_o be_v not_o incident_a to_o our_o maker_n now_o then_o apply_v this_o to_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n and_o you_o have_v a_o answer_n to_o your_o argument_n but_o 2._o i_o deny_v the_o suppose_a parity_n of_o the_o similitude_n for_o there_o be_v great_a reason_n why_o such_o severity_n shall_v be_v exercise_v by_o the_o civil_a government_n in_o the_o case_n propose_v because_o the_o raise_n of_o court_n and_o judicature_n thus_o independent_a do_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la dissolve_v the_o frame_n of_o government_n but_o now_o the_o case_n of_o schism_n by_o i_o mention_v and_o many_o other_o do_v not_o so_o for_o albeit_o they_o do_v somewhat_o disturb_v that_o external_a unity_n of_o order_n and_o sub-ordination_a of_o governor_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v preserve_v inviolate_a in_o the_o church_n yet_o be_v not_o that_o the_o unity_n which_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n but_o a_o internal_a unity_n of_o faith_n and_o charity_n the_o unity_n mention_v by_o the_o apostle_n 4.4.5_o ephes_n 4.4.5_o and_o albeit_o the_o dissolution_n of_o the_o other_o union_n be_v a_o sin_n yet_o that_o it_o be_v not_o damnable_a seem_v evident_a to_o i_o in_o that_o god_n sure_o have_v not_o make_v it_o as_o a_o necessary_a condition_n of_o eternal_a life_n to_o believe_v this_o subordination_n of_o governor_n in_o which_o this_o unity_n consist_v and_o that_o he_o have_v not_o do_v so_o i_o conclude_v because_o it_o be_v not_o where_o so_o manifest_o reveal_v to_o we_o that_o the_o mean_a capacity_n may_v apprehend_v it_o whereas_o what_o ever_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v under_o pain_n of_o eternal_a damnation_n must_v be_v plain_o and_o evident_o reveal_v 8._o c._n 6._o v._n 8._o for_o if_o ever_o that_o of_o micah_n will_v hold_v he_o have_v show_v thou_o o_o man_n what_o be_v good_a and_o what_o do_v the_o lord_n require_v of_o thou_o it_o be_v in_o this_o particular_a as_o a_o appendix_n to_o this_o objection_n sect._n 4_o i_o shall_v consider_v another_o of_o his_o similitude_n of_o like_a nature_n produce_v against_o our_o english_a church_n viz._n that_o if_o a_o province_n in_o england_n have_v withdraw_v itself_o from_o the_o public_a civil_a authority_n 231._o p._n 231._o it_o will_v not_o excuse_v they_o to_o say_v we_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o quarrel_v with_o those_o that_o continue_v in_o obedience_n to_o the_o king_n etc._n etc._n which_o if_o you_o produce_v to_o evidence_n this_o only_a that_o in_o case_n we_o have_v real_o substract_v our_o obedience_n from_o lawful_a authority_n excuse_n like_v to_o these_o will_v be_v unserviceable_a to_o we_o it_o be_v very_o pertinent_a and_o close_a but_o that_o it_o may_v do_v you_o any_o further_a service_n it_o must_v be_v evidence_v not_o beg_v that_o you_o have_v any_o authority_n de_fw-fr jure_fw-la over_o we_o and_o that_o such_o as_o we_o can_v not_o lawful_o refuse_v to_o grant_v or_o that_o to_o withdraw_v from_o usurpation_n be_v sinful_a which_o will_v be_v as_o easy_o perform_v as_o the_o former_a again_o sect._n 5_o you_o argue_v thus_o the_o schismatic_a be_v divide_v from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o so_o from_o christ_n himself_o and_o therefore_o be_v inevitable_o damn_v answ_n this_o division_n from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v twofold_a either_o in_o thing_n in_o which_o it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v unite_v and_o he_o that_o be_v thus_o divide_v be_v necessary_o cut_v off_o from_o christ_n and_o must_v bear_v his_o burden_n or_o in_o these_o thing_n in_o which_o it_o be_v not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o be_v unite_v as_o in_o the_o same_o liturgy_n or_o ceremony_n the_o same_o opinion_n as_o to_o matter_n not_o fundamental_a in_o which_o it_o be_v as_o impossible_a to_o obtain_v a_o general_a consent_n as_o in_o the_o lineament_n of_o our_o face_n now_o to_o assert_v that_o a_o schism_n in_o such_o matter_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o infirmity_n which_o be_v incident_a to_o humane_a frailty_n shall_v present_o cut_v off_o our_o weak_a brother_n from_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v to_o assert_v that_o god_n require_v upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n that_o a_o man_n shall_v true_o judge_v of_o that_o which_o many_o thousand_o even_o of_o learned_a man_n very_o different_o decide_v and_o which_o be_v so_o obscure_o reveal_v if_o at_o all_o it_o be_v so_o as_o that_o the_o most_o pierce_a intellect_n dare_v not_o peremptory_o assert_v they_o have_v find_v the_o truth_n thus_o whether_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v the_o only_a orthodox_n church_n of_o christ_n whether_o a_o general_a
council_n may_v err_v and_o whether_o the_o pope_n be_v the_o supreme_a pastor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n be_v question_n which_o extreme_o trouble_v the_o church_n of_o god_n you_o affirm_v all_o this_o the_o protestant_n and_o eastern_a church_n contradict_v you_o argument_n be_v produce_v on_o both_o side_n from_o scripture_n reason_n and_o antiquity_n now_o that_o it_o shall_v here_o be_v necessary_a for_o all_o the_o eastern_a church_n all_o the_o church_n of_o the_o protestant_n upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o desert_n their_o own_o opinion_n and_o embrace_v what_o you_o obtrude_v upon_o they_o when_o you_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o demonstrate_v and_o i_o see_v it_o do_v i_o shall_v not_o despair_v of_o a_o demonstration_n to_o evince_v that_o snow_n be_v black_a or_o to_o be_v convince_v of_o any_o the_o most_o amaze_a paradox_n and_o whereas_o you_o say_v that_o the_o schism_n of_o ignorant_a soul_n seem_v to_o be_v more_o contradictory_n to_o humane_a reason_n sect._n 6_o because_o the_o more_o ignorant_a they_o ought_v to_o know_v they_o be_v and_o be_v profess_o no_o pastor_n the_o more_o ought_v they_o to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n to_o authority_n 229._o mr._n c._n p._n 229._o and_o consequent_o the_o prefer_n of_o their_o own_o conduct_n or_o the_o conduct_n of_o particular_a church_n before_o the_o universal_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n for_o what_o you_o add_v of_o their_o excommunicate_v the_o whole_a church_n both_o pastor_n and_o flock_n as_o heathen_n and_o publican_n it_o be_v so_o impertinent_a as_o nothing_o can_v be_v more_o be_v a_o presumption_n so_o contrary_a to_o humane_a nature_n and_o reason_n 230._o p._n 230._o as_o that_o their_o want_n of_o learning_n be_v that_o which_o will_v most_o condemn_v they_o and_o this_o you_o speak_v not_o of_o person_n absolute_o idiot_n but_o such_o as_o discourse_v of_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o pass_v their_o judgement_n on_o they_o now_o here_o do_v you_o not_o suppose_v that_o to_o reject_v your_o doctrine_n be_v to_o reject_v the_o universal_a authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o we_o be_v not_o very_o likely_a to_o acknowledge_v 2._o be_v such_o person_n bind_v to_o conform_v their_o judgement_n to_o the_o most_o or_o not_o if_o not_o why_o do_v you_o trouble_v we_o with_o this_o argument_n if_o so_o then_o in_o the_o time_n of_o arrianisme_n they_o be_v bind_v to_o deny_v the_o divinity_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o under_o the_o old_a testament_n when_o idolatry_n prevail_v they_o be_v oblige_v unless_o they_o will_v do_v thing_n contrary_a to_o humane_a nature_n and_o common_a reason_n to_o become_v idolater_n and_o see_v the_o ruler_n of_o israel_n believe_v not_o on_o christ_n but_o reject_v he_o as_o a_o blasphemer_n the_o people_n be_v bind_v to_o do_v so_o too_o these_o and_o a_o thousand_o such_o like_a absurdity_n be_v the_o very_a natural_a consequence_n of_o your_o position_n but_o you_o have_v father_n to_o produce_v sect._n 7_o and_o 1._o 11._o ad_fw-la eph._n hom._n 11._o that_o of_o st._n chrysostome_n we_o consent_v unto_o in_o this_o sense_n viz._n that_o wilful_o to_o divide_v the_o unity_n of_o christ_n church_n do_v inevitable_o infer_v damnation_n as_o sure_o as_o the_o pierce_a of_o christ_n body_n but_o do_v this_o prove_v that_o a_o dissent_n from_o a_o particular_a church_n in_o matter_n of_o inferior_a moment_n out_o of_o humane_a frailty_n do_v inevitable_o do_v so_o 2._o 2._o ad_fw-la sympr_fw-la cp_n 2._o as_o for_o that_o of_o st._n pacian_a who_o tell_v we_o that_o novatian_n be_v nor_o crown_v because_o he_o die_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n we_o answ_n that_o in_o st._n pacians_n phrase_n to_o die_v out_o of_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o die_v without_o charity_n to_o the_o member_n of_o it_o as_o it_o immediate_o there_o follow_v hear_v the_o apostle_n if_o i_o have_v all_o faith_n and_o have_v not_o charity_n i_o be_o nothing_o 3._o 10._o de_fw-fr symb._n ad_fw-la catech._n l._n 4._o c._n 10._o in_o his_o citation_n from_o st._n austin_n he_o abuse_v we_o for_o whereas_o st._n austin_n say_v it_o will_v nothing_o avail_v he_o that_o be_v find_v without_o the_o church_n quod_fw-la credidit_fw-la that_o he_o believe_v in_o christ_n or_o profess_a christianity_n or_o do_v so_o much_o good_a without_o respect_n to_o the_o chief_a good_a mr._n c._n will_v have_v he_o to_o asser_n to_o that_o it_o do_v nothing_o profit_v such_o a_o one_o 226._o mr._n c.p._n 226._o that_o he_o be_v orthodox_n in_o belief_n whereas_o st._n austin_n speak_v of_o heretic_n and_o present_o cry_v out_o hear_v this_o o_o you_o heretic_n and_o again_o quaecunque_fw-la congregatio_fw-la cujustibet_fw-la haeresis_fw-la in_o angulis_fw-la sedet_fw-la concubina_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la matrona_fw-la and_o a_o three_o time_n o_o haeresis_fw-la arriana_fw-la quid_fw-la insultas_fw-la now_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n by_o heresy_n we_o acknowledge_v to_o incur_v damnation_n the_o passage_n of_o st._n 6._o euseb_n hist_o eccles_n l._n 6._o denis_n be_v very_o true_a viz._n that_o all_o thing_n shall_v be_v endure_v rather_o than_o we_o shall_v consent_v to_o the_o division_n of_o god_n church_n but_o this_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o the_o evil_a of_o sin_n but_o of_o pain_n and_o misery_n and_o what_o of_o this_o last_o irenaeus_n do_v no_o where_n say_v there_o can_v possible_o be_v make_v any_o reformation_n etc._n etc._n but_o only_o they_o viz._n 62._o propter_fw-la modicat_fw-la &_o quaslibet_fw-la causas_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 62._o who_o for_o crizzle_a cause_n divide_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n who_o strain_n at_o gnat_n and_o swallow_v camel_n such_o as_o these_o can_v make_v no_o reformation_n of_o any_o such_o importance_n as_o to_o countervail_v the_o danger_n of_o a_o division_n which_o be_v altogether_o impertinent_a to_o the_o design_n for_o which_o it_o be_v produce_v but_o of_o these_o two_o last_o place_n see_v the_o incomparable_a chill_a p._n 256_o 257._o from_o what_o have_v be_v say_v we_o may_v see_v the_o weakness_n of_o this_o argument_n which_o we_o find_v p._n 296._o viz._n salvation_n may_v be_v have_v in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o it_o can_v be_v schismatical_a albeit_o you_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o we_o distinguish_v the_o quality_n of_o person_n consider_v your_o church_n either_o in_o regard_n of_o those_o in_o who_o either_o negligence_n or_o pride_n or_o worldly_a fear_n or_o hope_n or_o some_o other_o voluntary_a sin_n be_v the_o cause_n of_o their_o schism_n and_o continuance_n in_o your_o church_n and_o of_o such_o we_o pass_v the_o heavy_a sentence_n or_o in_o regard_n of_o those_o who_o owe_v their_o schism_n to_o want_v of_o capacity_n or_o default_n of_o instruction_n or_o such_o like_a involuntary_a defect_n and_o these_o we_o say_v may_v have_v salvation_n albeit_o they_o continue_v member_n of_o your_o church_n chap._n xx._n general_a council_n be_v not_o infallible_a whether_o consider_v with_o the_o pope_n sect_n 1._o or_o without_o the_o pope_n sect_n 2._o their_o infallibility_n not_o conclude_v 1_o from_o scripture_n sect_n 3._o that_o place_n of_o deut._n 17._o consider_v ibid._n as_o also_o the_o argument_n from_o gen._n 49._o sect_n 4._o from_o 1_o tim._n 3.16_o sect_n 5._o from_o mat._n 23._o v._n 3._o sect_n 6._o nor_o 2_o from_o reason_n sect_n 7._o mr._n c's_o argument_n answer_v sect_n 7_o 8._o the_o worthy_n of_o our_o church_n do_v not_o confess_v it_o sect_n 9_o 10.11_o nor_o last_o be_v it_o evince_v from_o the_o consent_n of_o universal_a antiquity_n sect_n 12._o the_o testimony_n of_o st._n athanasius_n optatus_n vincentius_n lirinensis_n and_o st._n austin_n produce_v against_o it_o sect_n 12_o 13_o 14_o &_o 15._o proposition_n 4_o proposition_n general_n council_n be_v not_o infallible_a now_o touch_v the_o infallibility_n of_o general_n council_n sect._n 1_o 1._o do_v you_o mean_v such_o a_o one_o as_o be_v confirm_v by_o the_o pope_n or_o one_o without_o or_o before_o his_o confirmation_n if_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v requisite_a then_o without_o it_o be_v the_o judgement_n of_o all_o the_o bishop_n fallible_a and_o if_o so_o then_o either_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v so_o too_o or_o not_o if_o the_o first_o than_o the_o whole_a general_n council_n be_v fallible_a in_o its_o determination_n for_o it_o can_v have_v no_o other_o member_n but_o the_o pope_n and_o other_o and_o if_o both_o these_o be_v fallible_a it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o council_n be_v so_o if_o infallible_a then_o be_v the_o bishop_n bind_v to_o follow_v the_o sentence_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o can_v sit_v as_o judge_n of_o the_o cause_n it_o be_v very_o right_a and_o equitable_a that_o fallible_a person_n who_o of_o themselves_o may_v dangerous_o err_v shall_v submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o he_o who_o can_v do_v
dubio_fw-la whether_o this_o convention_n have_v the_o condition_n of_o a_o judge_n infallible_a see_v therefore_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o most_o of_o the_o question_n propose_v by_o i_o be_v various_o maintain_v by_o man_n of_o learning_n and_o ability_n and_o it_o be_v as_o evident_a that_o god_n have_v not_o interpose_v his_o decision_n touch_v any_o of_o they_o it_o seem_v apparent_a unto_o i_o that_o he_o never_o intend_v a_o general_a council_n as_o a_o judge_n to_o who_o decision_n upon_o pain_n of_o damnation_n we_o must_v assent_v and_o to_o which_o we_o must_v necessary_o submit_v our_o judgement_n if_o we_o will_v avoid_v the_o ruin_n of_o the_o church_n for_o sure_o it_o can_v be_v that_o what_o be_v so_o necessary_a to_o the_o unity_n that_o be_v the_o be_v of_o the_o church_n shall_v be_v leave_v by_o a_o alwise_a god_n at_o such_o infinite_a uncertainty_n and_o i_o appeal_v unto_o yourself_o whether_o we_o who_o say_v the_o scripture_n must_v be_v judge_n in_o fundamental_o or_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o that_o god_n be_v and_o that_o he_o be_v a_o rewarder_n of_o those_o that_o diligent_o seek_v he_o that_o he_o be_v holy_a just_a and_o good_a that_o christ_n jesus_n come_v into_o the_o world_n to_o save_v sinner_n dye_v for_o we_o rise_v again_o will_v raise_v we_o up_o at_o the_o last_o day_n and_o bring_v we_o unto_o judgement_n that_o faith_n repentance_n and_o obedience_n or_o holiness_n of_o life_n be_v necessary_a for_o our_o attainment_n unto_o happiness_n be_v at_o such_o uncertainty_n have_v not_o the_o scripture_n lay_v down_o these_o thing_n with_o the_o great_a perspicuity_n be_v they_o not_o write_v as_o with_o a_o sun_n beam_n be_v there_o any_o need_n of_o a_o general_a council_n to_o determine_v these_o thing_n and_o must_v the_o church_n undoubted_o be_v ruin_v if_o she_o do_v not_o now_o as_o for_o other_o thing_n which_o may_v be_v various_o conceive_v and_o hold_v without_o the_o destruction_n of_o faith_n or_o good_a manner_n a_o liberty_n of_o judgement_n may_v be_v allow_v only_o with_o such_o restriction_n as_o shall_v obviate_v all_o public_a disturbance_n of_o the_o church_n nor_o do_v it_o weaken_v this_o discourse_n at_o all_o that_o we_o be_v uncertain_a touch_v the_o number_n of_o fundamental_o see_v it_o can_v rational_o be_v deny_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v so_o be_v perspicuous_o lay_v down_o in_o scripture_n albeit_o we_o can_v say_v è_fw-la contra_fw-la that_o whatever_o be_v perspicuous_o lay_v down_o in_o scripture_n be_v fundamental_a 4._o sect._n 9_o to_o come_v to_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o worthy_a of_o the_o son_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n he_o will_v have_v the_o infallibility_n of_o general_n council_n to_o be_v assert_v by_o dr._n white_n dr._n field_n and_o the_o most_o reverend_a archbishop_n lawd_n but_o it_o be_v not_o where_o so_o affirm_v by_o they_o 3._o arch._n lawd_n confer_v sect_n 37._o num._n 3._o dr._n white_a indeed_o be_v charge_v by_o a._n c._n to_o have_v confess_v that_o the_o visible_a church_n have_v in_o all_o age_n teach_v the_o unchanged_a faith_n of_o christ_n in_o all_o point_v fundamental_a and_o this_o he_o have_v reason_n to_o affirm_v but_o that_o he_o understand_v not_o the_o visible_a church_n represent_v in_o a_o general_n council_n appear_v 1._o because_o a_o general_n council_n have_v not_o be_v assemble_v in_o all_o age_n and_o 2._o those_o that_o have_v be_v assemble_v have_v not_o teach_v all_o fundamental_o but_o some_o only_a at_o the_o most_o and_o therefore_o he_o understand_v it_o if_o he_o ever_o say_v so_o which_o we_o have_v fide_fw-la jesuiticâ_fw-la of_o the_o visible_a church_n diffuse_v through_o the_o universe_n the_o other_o passage_n out_o of_o sect_n sect._n 10_o 21._o be_v so_o evident_o understand_v of_o the_o church_n essential_a and_o diffusive_a 5._o ibid._n sect_n 21._o n._n 5._o that_o shall_v mr._n cressie_n invoke_v god_n to_o witness_v that_o he_o understand_v the_o arch_a bishop_n otherwise_o one_o can_v not_o possible_o believe_v he_o for_o he_o tell_v he_o divers_a protestant_n believe_v the_o same_o with_o he_o cites_n keckerman_n thus_o speak_v the_o question_n be_v whether_o the_o whole_a church_n universal_o consider_v for_o all_o the_o elect_n who_o be_v member_n of_o the_o militant_a church_n can_v err_v in_o the_o whole_a faith_n or_o any_o weighty_a point_n thereof_o and_o answer_v it_o be_v simple_o impossible_a and_o the_o passage_n of_o dr._n field_n run_v thus_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o church_n shall_v ever_o by_o apostasy_n and_o misbeleif_a whole_o depart_v from_o god_n take_v the_o church_n for_o all_o the_o beleiver_n now_o live_v and_o in_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v know_v express_o and_o have_v prove_v that_o the_o whole_a militant_a church_n be_v holy_a he_o thence_o infer_v that_o she_o the_o whole_a militant_a church_n can_v possible_o err_v in_o fundamental_o albeit_o she_o may_v err_v in_o superstructure_n for_o if_o she_o can_v she_o will_v not_o be_v holy_a but_o heretical_a it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o no_o assembly_n be_v it_o never_o so_o general_a of_o such_o heretic_n be_v or_o can_v be_v holy_a he_o go_v on_o and_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o arch_a bishop_n assert_n sect._n 11_o that_o a_o general_n council_n de_fw-fr post_fw-la facto_fw-la be_v unerrable_a that_o be_v 254._o p._n 254._o when_o its_o decision_n be_v admit_v once_o and_o receive_v general_o by_o catholic_n now_o because_o he_o can_v not_o but_o know_v that_o he_o have_v abuse_v the_o arch_a bishop_n in_o this_o citation_n instead_o of_o sect_n 38._o he_o give_v we_o sect_n 33._o but_o to_o pass_v that_o the_o arch_a bishop_n say_v only_o this_o that_o a_o general_n council_n be_v a_o very_a probable_a but_o yet_o a_o fallible_a way_n of_o introduce_v truth_n but_o after_o its_o determination_n be_v admit_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n then_o be_v find_v true_a it_o be_v also_o infallible_a that_o be_v say_v he_o it_o deceive_v no_o man_n for_o so_o all_o truth_n be_v and_o be_v to_o we_o when_o it_o be_v once_o know_v to_o be_v truth_n so_o that_o he_o only_o say_v this_o when_o the_o church_n have_v find_v its_o determination_n true_a they_o be_v infallible_a hear_v his_o word_n it_o be_v true_a a_o general_n council_n de_fw-fr post_fw-la facto_fw-la after_o it_o be_v end_v and_o admit_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n which_o he_o suppose_v can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v then_o infallible_a for_o it_o can_v err_v in_o that_o which_o it_o have_v true_o determine_v already_o without_o error_n as_o that_o be_v suppose_v to_o be_v which_o the_o whole_a church_n acknowledge_v as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n but_o that_o a_o general_n council_n a_o part_n ante_fw-la when_o it_o first_o sit_v down_o and_o continue_v to_o deliberate_v may_v true_o be_v say_v to_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o it_o be_v after_o determination_n what_o ever_o they_o be_v i_o utter_o deny_v 305._o p._n 305._o what_o he_o further_o cite_v from_o mr._n ridley_n dr._n bilson_n dr._n potter_n be_v evident_o inconsequent_a nor_o do_v mr._n hooker_n say_v absolute_o that_o the_o will_n of_o god_n be_v to_o have_v we_o do_v what_o ever_o the_o sentence_n of_o judicial_a and_o final_a decision_n shall_v determine_v but_o manifest_o restrain_v his_o word_n to_o litigious_a and_o controvert_v cause_n of_o such_o quality_n as_o our_o ceremony_n be_v as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o his_o preface_n sect_n 6._o last_o as_o for_o the_o consent_n of_o universal_a antiquity_n sect._n 12_o it_o can_v with_o any_o colour_n be_v allege_v nay_o we_o have_v strong_a presumption_n that_o they_o little_o dream_v of_o such_o infallibility_n as_o mr._n c._n here_o contend_v for_o and_o indeed_o have_v it_o be_v otherwise_o how_o be_v it_o that_o in_o so_o many_o volume_n write_v by_o they_o against_o all_o kind_n of_o heretic_n they_o never_o touch_v upon_o this_o argument_n never_o press_v the_o infallibility_n of_o general_n council_n never_o produce_v they_o as_o the_o oracle_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n or_o tell_v their_o adversary_n that_o they_o must_v yield_v the_o same_o obedience_n to_o they_o as_o scripture_n have_v this_o be_v then_o admit_v as_o a_o principle_n in_o the_o church_n of_o god_n how_o can_v it_o easy_o be_v imagine_v that_o the_o father_n of_o the_o church_n shall_v have_v over_o look_v so_o facile_a and_o compendious_a a_o proof_n and_o yet_o they_o have_v not_o only_o do_v so_o epict._n frustra_fw-la igitur_fw-la circumcursitante_n praetexunt_fw-la synodos_fw-la ob_fw-la fidem_fw-la e●postulare_fw-la cum_fw-la sit_fw-la divina_fw-la scriptura_fw-la omnibus_fw-la potentior_fw-la athan._n l._n de_fw-la syn._n speak_v against_o the_o arrian_n epist_n ad_fw-la epict._n but_o assert_v many_o thing_n which_o be_v evident_o repugnant_a to_o this_o pretence_n thus_o athanasius_n it_o be_v
in_o vain_a that_o the_o arrian_n pretend_v synod_n for_o their_o faith_n when_o they_o have_v the_o divine_a scripture_n more_o powerful_a than_o they_o all_o from_o whence_o the_o argument_n be_v apparent_a that_o which_o be_v more_o powerful_a than_o all_o synod_n for_o the_o stablish_n of_o faith_n be_v a_o sufficient_a mean_n of_o unity_n because_o the_o power_n of_o general_n synod_n be_v suppose_v to_o be_v so_o but_o such_o be_v the_o holy_a scripture_n according_a to_o athanasius_n ergo._n nor_n be_v there_o any_o contradiction_n to_o this_o in_o what_o be_v cite_v from_o athanasius_n by_o mr._n c._n viz._n that_o he_o wonder_n how_o any_o one_o dare_v move_v a_o question_n touch_v matter_n define_v by_o the_o nicene_n council_n since_o the_o decree_n of_o such_o council_n can_v be_v change_v without_o error_n for_o what_o consequence_n be_v this_o the_o decree_n of_o such_o council_n as_o the_o nicene_n who_o decree_n be_v orthodox_n and_o regulate_v by_o the_o scripture_n can_v be_v change_v without_o error_n ergo_fw-la general_a council_n be_v infallible_a especial_o when_o athanasius_n immediate_o give_v this_o reason_n viz._n because_o the_o faith_n there_o deliver_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n seem_v sufficient_a to_o he_o to_o overturn_v all_o impiety_n so_o then_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n of_o their_o immutability_n because_o their_o decree_n be_v deliver_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n 2._o sect._n 13_o optatus_n milev_n speak_v thus_o we_o must_v seek_v judge_n viz._n in_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o you_o donatist_n 5._o cont._n parmen_fw-la l._n 5._o and_o we_o catholic_n on_o earth_n there_o can_v no_o judgement_n of_o this_o matter_n be_v find_v viz._n none_n which_o be_v infallible_a as_o appear_v from_o the_o word_n precedent_n no_o body_n may_v believe_v you_o nor_o any_o body_n we_o for_o we_o be_v all_o contentious_a man_n and_o again_o by_o fide_v the_o truth_n be_v hinder_v we_o must_v seek_v a_o judge_n from_o heaven_n but_o wherefore_o shall_v we_o knock_v at_o heaven_n when_o we_o have_v it_o here_o in_o the_o gospel_n in_o which_o place_n he_o evident_o conclude_v that_o no_o convention_n of_o man_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v for_o their_o own_o authority_n nemo_fw-la vobis_fw-la donatistis_fw-la nemo_fw-la nobis_fw-la catholicis_fw-la credat_fw-la 2._o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o infallible_a judge_n of_o that_o controversy_n upon_o earth_n both_o which_o be_v sufficient_o repugnant_a to_o this_o pretend_a infallibility_n 3._o sect._n 14_o vincentius_n lirinensis_n in_o his_o discourse_n upon_o this_o question_n 1._o adu._n she_o c._n 1._o how_o a_o christian_a may_v be_v able_a sure_o to_o discern_v the_o catholic_n truth_n from_o heretical_a falsity_n advise_v we_o to_o this_o end_n to_o fortify_v our_o faith_n 1._o by_o the_o authority_n of_o god_n law_n 2._o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n retuli_fw-la hujusmodi_fw-la semper_fw-la responsum_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la fere_n retuli_fw-la this_o way_n say_v he_o i_o be_v direct_v to_o by_o almost_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n i_o inquire_v of_o so_o that_o this_o opinion_n here_o deliver_v be_v not_o his_o private_a one_o but_o it_o be_v the_o common_a way_n by_o which_o the_o father_n of_o his_o age_n discern_v truth_n from_o error_n and_o here_o let_v it_o be_v consider_v 1._o that_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n he_o do_v not_o understand_v the_o definition_n of_o any_o general_a council_n but_o partly_o the_o universal_a consent_n of_o the_o member_n of_o the_o then_o present_a church_n partly_o the_o constant_a and_o perpetual_a profession_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o ancient_a church_n 3._o cap._n 3._o as_o his_o own_o word_n do_v evince_n unto_o we_o for_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o be_v proper_o catholic_n est_fw-la quod_fw-la ubique_fw-la quod_fw-la semper_fw-la quod_fw-la ab_fw-la omnibus_fw-la creditum_fw-la est_fw-la which_o be_v believe_v every_o where_o at_o all_o time_n and_o by_o all_o man_n this_o say_v he_o we_o must_v be_v careful_a to_o hold_v as_o we_o shall_v he_o if_o we_o follow_v universality_n antiquity_n and_o consent_n what_o ever_o exception_n be_v make_v by_o the_o papist_n to_o this_o evidence_n etc._n de_fw-fr formali_fw-la objecto_fw-la fidei_fw-la p._n 210_o etc._n etc._n be_v take_v off_o by_o the_o learned_a baron_n 2._o let_v it_o here_o be_v note_v that_o vincentius_n do_v not_o so_o much_o as_o once_o in_o all_o his_o book_n direct_v we_o to_o the_o determination_n much_o less_o to_o the_o infallible_a determination_n of_o the_o pope_n roman_a church_n or_o a_o general_n council_n as_o the_o way_n to_o discern_v truth_n from_o heresy_n and_o yet_o his_o silence_n in_o these_o particular_n can_v not_o easy_o be_v imagine_v in_o a_o treatise_n write_v purposely_o on_o that_o subject_n and_o wherein_o he_o undertake_v to_o give_v we_o full_a and_o certain_a direction_n to_o avoid_v heresy_n if_o the_o church_n have_v then_o be_v of_o the_o romanist_n opinion_n st._n augustine_n testimony_n be_v as_o clear_v for_o thus_o he_o speak_v hieron_n ep._n 19_o ad_fw-la hieron_n i_o have_v learned_a to_o give_v only_o to_o those_o writing_n which_o be_v now_o call_v canonical_a this_o reverence_n and_o honour_n as_o that_o i_o dare_v say_v that_o none_o of_o they_o err_v in_o writing_n but_o other_o i_o so_o read_v that_o how_o holy_a and_o learned_a so_o ever_o they_o be_v i_o do_v not_o therefore_o think_v it_o true_a because_o they_o so_o judge_v it_o but_o because_o they_o persuade_v i_o either_o by_o those_o canonical_a book_n or_o by_o probable_a reason_n that_o they_o say_v true_a if_o therefore_o this_o honour_n of_o be_v free_a from_o error_n in_o their_o writing_n be_v only_o to_o be_v ascribe_v to_o the_o canonical_a book_n of_o scripture_n then_o must_v the_o decretal_a epistle_n of_o pope_n the_o decree_n of_o general_a council_n be_v exclude_v from_o it_o according_a to_o st._n austin_n as_o be_v writer_n which_o be_v not_o canonical_a for_o the_o particle_n solas_fw-la except_v all_o that_o be_v not_o so_o yea_o he_o do_v not_o only_o compare_v all_o other_o writer_n with_o scripture_n in_o this_o contest_v but_o their_o writing_n also_o as_o in_o this_o same_o epistle_n only_o to_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 112._o ep._n 112._o do_v i_o owe_v this_o ingenuous_a servitude_n so_o to_o follow_v they_o alone_o as_o not_o to_o doubt_v that_o the_o writer_n of_o they_o err_v in_o any_o thing_n and_o again_o if_o any_o thing_n be_v affirm_v by_o the_o clear_a authority_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n it_o be_v undoubted_o to_o be_v believe_v but_o as_o for_o other_o witness_n or_o testimony_n whereby_o we_o be_v persuade_v to_o believe_v any_o thing_n liceat_fw-la tibi_fw-la credere_fw-la vel_fw-la non_fw-la credere_fw-la liceat_fw-la we_o be_v free_a to_o believe_v they_o or_o not_o but_o undeniable_a be_v that_o of_o his_o three_o book_n against_o maximinus_n neither_o ought_v i_o as_o fore-judging_a to_o bring_v forth_o the_o nicene_n council_n nor_o thou_o the_o council_n of_o ariminum_n i_o be_o not_o bind_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o this_o nor_o thou_o of_o that_o let_v matter_n contend_v with_o matter_n cause_n with_o cause_n reason_n with_o reason_n by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o be_v witness_n not_o proper_a to_o either_o of_o we_o but_o common_a to_o both_o here_o we_o be_v tell_v that_o st._n austin_n speak_v not_o his_o own_o mind_n but_o the_o mind_n of_o the_o heretic_n he_o have_v to_o deal_v with_o a_o answer_n haply_o borrow_v from_o zabarel_n or_o some_o other_o commentator_n upon_o aristotle_n who_o when_o they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o avoid_v his_o sentence_n any_o other_o way_n tell_v we_o that_o he_o speak_v ex_fw-la ment_fw-la aliorum_fw-la philosophorum_fw-la but_o the_o truth_n be_v otherwise_o as_o appear_v from_o the_o 18._o and_o 19_o chap._n of_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la where_o the_o like_a passage_n may_v be_v find_v and_o the_o question_n be_v there_o state_v which_o be_v the_o true_a church_n he_o desire_v the_o donatist_n to_o demonstrate_v their_o church_n not_o in_o the_o speech_n and_o rumour_n of_o the_o african_n not_o in_o the_o council_n of_o their_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n but_o in_o the_o canonical-authority_n of_o the_o sacred_a book_n and_o c._n 19_o give_v this_o reason_n of_o his_o demand_n because_o say_v he_o neither_o do_v we_o say_v that_o they_o ought_v to_o believe_v we_o to_o be_v in_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n because_o that_o church_n which_o we_o hold_v be_v commend_v by_o optatus_n ambrose_n or_o innumerable_a other_o bishop_n of_o our_o communion_n or_o because_o it_o be_v predicate_v by_o the_o council_n of_o our_o college_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o speak_v of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n he_o say_v these_o be_v the_o document_n of_o our_o cause_n these_o be_v its_o foundation_n these_o be_v its_o upholder_n as_o
private_a reason_n you_o reject_v 2._o why_o may_v not_o he_o be_v allow_v to_o judge_v for_o himself_o in_o thing_n perspicuous_o lay_v down_o in_o scripture_n who_o must_v be_v permit_v to_o do_v it_o touch_v the_o infallibility_n of_o a_o general_n council_n which_o be_v not_o where_o evident_o reveal_v 2._o must_v he_o not_o judge_v also_o in_o what_o case_n she_o be_v thus_o infallible_a and_o so_o to_o be_v esteem_v whether_o when_o contradict_v or_o seem_v to_o contradict_v the_o voice_n of_o scripture_n or_o evident_a demonstration_n whether_o when_o determine_v matter_n of_o discipline_n and_o circumstantial_o or_o of_o faith_n only_o whether_o she_o be_v contradict_v by_o man_n of_o worth_n place_n and_o esteem_v or_o no_o whether_o when_o there_o appear_v any_o thing_n that_o may_v argue_v a_o unlawful_a proceed_n or_o not_o if_o you_o here_o acknowledge_v that_o in_o these_o and_o such_o like_a cause_n private_a reason_n must_v sit_v as_o umpire_n than_o what_o become_v of_o all_o your_o objection_n to_o the_o contrary_a usher_v in_o with_o such_o solemnity_n and_o triumph_n if_o not_o then_o be_v he_o evident_o leave_v at_o uncertainty_n when_o the_o determination_n of_o his_o guide_n be_v infallible_a when_o not_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o knowledge_n of_o many_o of_o those_o case_n by_o i_o propound_v must_v be_v precognita_fw-la to_o this_o 3._o whence_o shall_v he_o fetch_v his_o reason_n to_o conclude_v this_o infallibility_n from_o scripture_n this_o be_v already_o explode_v from_o other_o neither_o can_v this_o be_v rational_o say_v see_v other_o assembly_n consist_v of_o man_n that_o be_v fallible_a in_o themselves_o nor_o can_v they_o challenge_v to_o themselves_o infallible_a assistance_n from_o god_n without_o his_o promise_n which_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v but_o in_o holy_a scripture_n 3._o if_o the_o apostle_n commend_v they_o who_o examine_v their_o sermon_n by_o their_o conformity_n to_o the_o law_n and_o the_o prophet_n and_o the_o man_n of_o berea_n be_v esteem_v noble_a for_o search_v the_o scripture_n to_o acquaint_v themselves_o 17.11_o act_n 17.11_o whether_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o teach_v be_v so_o or_o no_o i_o suppose_v it_o can_v reasonable_o be_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o decree_n of_o a_o general_n council_n may_v also_o be_v try_v by_o private_a man_n whether_o they_o be_v conform_v to_o scripture_n yea_o or_o no_o for_o i_o hope_v they_o will_v not_o say_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o such_o council_n be_v of_o great_a authority_n than_o the_o apostle_n sermon_n which_o yet_o be_v submit_v to_o the_o trial_n of_o private_a man_n by_o the_o rule_n of_o scripture_n add_v to_o this_o that_o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n be_v attend_v with_o a_o train_n of_o miracle_n motive_n very_o prevalent_a to_o induce_v beleif_n and_o therefore_o if_o they_o be_v commend_v who_o even_o in_o this_o case_n and_o after_o the_o sanhedrims_n determination_n against_o their_o doctrine_n and_o the_o rejection_n of_o it_o by_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n do_v thus_o make_v search_n into_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o determine_v according_a to_o their_o private_a interpretation_n of_o it_o how_o can_v it_o be_v a_o thing_n blame-worthy_a in_o we_o to_o plead_v for_o such_o a_o liberty_n in_o reference_n to_o the_o decree_n of_o general_a council_n 4._o the_o scripture_n command_v we_o to_o try_v all_o thing_n and_o hold_v what_o be_v good_a to_o try_v the_o spirit_n whether_o they_o be_v of_o god_n or_o no_o 4.1_o 1_o thes_n 5._o 1_o john_n 4.1_o to_o take_v heed_n lest_o we_o be_v seduce_v by_o what_o touchstone_n i_o pray_v you_o must_v we_o try_v by_o scripture_n then_o have_v we_o what_o we_o so_o much_o contend_v for_o by_o a_o general_n council_n then_o be_v not_o these_o command_n in_o force_n till_o the_o day_n of_o constantine_n they_o concern_v none_o of_o those_o to_o who_o they_o be_v indict_v nor_o have_v they_o sufficient_a mean_n to_o try_v the_o truth_n the_o church_n diffuse_v alas_o poor_a creature_n must_v they_o travel_v throughout_o all_o the_o world_n to_o know_v the_o decision_n of_o every_o church_n and_o when_o this_o be_v do_v how_o shall_v they_o know_v that_o what_o they_o hold_v to_o day_n shall_v be_v hold_v to_o morrow_n when_o they_o be_v divide_v how_o shall_v they_o know_v who_o be_v in_o the_o right_a judge_v by_o scripture_n and_o reason_n they_o must_v not_o say_v you_o and_o what_o other_o judge_n can_v be_v obtain_v for_o three_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n and_o upward_o i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o divine_v sect._n 8_o again_o why_o be_v we_o bid_v to_o read_v the_o scripture_n meditate_v in_o it_o day_n and_o night_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o illumination_n of_o our_o mind_n the_o spirit_n of_o wisdom_n and_o revelation_n and_o the_o assistance_n of_o god_n holy_a spirit_n that_o we_o may_v know_v it_o be_v it_o not_o sufficient_a to_o read_v and_o understand_v what_o our_o infallible_a judge_n say_v what_o need_v of_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o spirit_n and_o the_o illumination_n of_o my_o mind_n to_o know_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n if_o this_o judge_n must_v give_v it_o i_o and_o i_o can_v have_v it_o elsewhere_o yea_o why_o do_v god_n promise_n that_o his_o secret_n shall_v be_v with_o they_o that_o fear_v he_o he_o will_v teach_v they_o his_o covenant_n that_o if_o we_o search_v for_o understand_v as_o for_o silver_n 2-6_a prov._n 2_o 2-6_a and_o for_o hide_a treasure_n we_o shall_v find_v it_o what_o need_v of_o all_o this_o search_n by_o any_o except_v only_a bishop_n who_o be_v to_o be_v member_n of_o a_o general_n council_n if_o it_o be_v so_o dangerous_a to_o judge_v without_o they_o and_o when_o they_o have_v once_o judge_v we_o have_v infallible_o the_o truth_n last_o that_o rule_n of_o faith_n be_v deserve_o suspect_v which_o will_v not_o endure_v the_o trial_n but_o such_o be_v this_o which_o will_v not_o suffer_v man_n to_o use_v their_o judgement_n to_o examine_v it_o be_v not_o that_o bruta_fw-la fides_fw-la which_o require_v a_o man_n beleif_n albeit_o he_o know_v no_o reason_n for_o it_o but_o evident_a reason_n to_o the_o contrary_n you_o will_v say_v that_o he_o judge_v this_o at_o least_o that_o it_o be_v very_o unlikely_a the_o church_n shall_v err_v and_o this_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v his_o judgement_n rational_a answ_n then_o the_o faith_n of_o jew_n who_o reject_v our_o saviour_n with_o their_o sanhedrim_n of_o the_o pagan_n who_o with_o their_o wise_a man_n reject_v christianity_n must_v be_v good_a and_o rational_a and_o if_o private_a man_n must_v be_v allow_v this_o judgement_n much_o more_o must_v it_o be_v grant_v to_o whole_a nation_n wherein_o haply_o there_o be_v ten_o time_n as_o many_o learned_a man_n as_o ever_o meet_v in_o any_o synod_n chap._n xxiii_o our_o eight_o proposition_n sect_n 1._o separation_n from_o the_o external_a or_o internal_a communion_n of_o a_o church_n sect_n 2._o the_o church_n catholic_n not_o organical_a sect_n 3._o it_o be_v essential_a unity_n not_o external_a sect_n 4._o what_o separation_n be_v the_o sin_n of_o schism_n sect_n 5._o to_o leave_v the_o church_n and_o to_o leave_v her_o external_a communion_n not_o the_o same_o ibid._n the_o church_n of_o rome_n not_o the_o guide_n of_o faith_n ibid._n we_o separate_v not_o external_o from_o the_o church_n catholic_n sect_n 6._o why_o from_o the_o roman_a sect_n 7._o mr._n c_o '_o s._n assertion_n that_o the_o article_n we_o reject_v be_v as_o old_a as_o st._n gregory_n sect_n 9_o our_o evidence_n to_o the_o contrary_a large_o produce_v sect_n 10_o 11._o my_o eight_o proposition_n be_v that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o protestant_n have_v separate_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n sect._n 1_o proposition_n 8._o proposition_n or_o if_o it_o shall_v be_v grant_v that_o they_o external_o separate_v from_o all_o visible_a church_n beside_o themselves_o yet_o can_v they_o not_o just_o be_v charge_v with_o schism_n especial_o from_o the_o roman_a church_n where_o 1._o i_o premise_v that_o separation_n be_v twofold_a 1._o from_o the_o internal_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n sect._n 2_o or_o conjunction_n with_o it_o by_o faith_n and_o charity_n or_o obedience_n or_o external_a by_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v in_o the_o same_o liturgy_n and_o public_a worship_n 2._o i_o assert_v sect._n 3_o that_o the_o church_n catholic_n which_o we_o profess_v to_o believe_v in_o the_o apostle_n creed_n be_v not_o a_o organical_a body_n make_v up_o of_o many_o particular_a church_n for_o be_v it_o so_o none_o can_v be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n who_o be_v not_o member_n of_o some_o particular_a church_n and_o consequent_o shall_v a_o christian_a live_v alone_o among_o pagan_n in_o some_o country_n remote_a from_o christendom_n convert_v some_o of_o they_o to_o christianity_n they_o
will_v not_o be_v member_n of_o the_o church_n because_o not_o unite_v to_o some_o organical_a part_n of_o it_o yea_o 2._o in_o the_o day_n of_o elijah_n there_o will_v have_v be_v no_o church_n there_o be_v no_o such_o organical_a body_n and_o 3._o under_o the_o prevail_a of_o arrianisme_n those_o righteous_a soul_n who_o renounce_v communion_n with_o the_o arrian_n and_o flee_v into_o den_n and_o cave_n must_v have_v renounce_v the_o church_n catholic_n as_o be_v member_n of_o no_o such_o organical_a body_n now_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n can_v be_v external_a which_o mr._n c._n every_o where_o supposeer_n and_o take_v for_o grant_v but_o only_a internal_a or_o that_o of_o faith_n and_o charity_n and_o consequent_o to_o prove_v our_o separation_n from_o the_o holy_a catholic_n church_n it_o must_v be_v prove_v that_o we_o have_v not_o that_o faith_n obedience_n and_o charity_n which_o be_v requisite_a to_o make_v we_o member_n of_o that_o church_n which_o be_v a_o task_n so_o hard_o that_o mr._n c._n dare_v not_o set_v upon_o it_o 3._o sect._n 4_o that_o to_o be_v unite_v in_o external_a communion_n with_o some_o such_o part_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n can_v be_v necessary_a to_o my_o be_v a_o member_n of_o it_o 9_o mr._n chill_a p._n 255._o sect_n 9_o this_o be_v evident_a 1._o from_o the_o instance_n now_o produce_v 2._o because_o a_o man_n unjust_o excommunicate_v be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n external_a communion_n and_o yet_o he_o be_v still_o a_o member_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o also_o strengthen_v the_o former_a corollary_n 4._o sect._n 5_o 264._o id._n p._n 264._o that_o not_o every_o separation_n but_o only_o a_o causeless_a separation_n from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o any_o church_n be_v the_o sin_n of_o schism_n this_o we_o have_v sufficient_o prove_v above_o whence_o it_o evident_o follow_v that_o those_o protestant_n who_o say_n they_o forsake_v the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n visible_a that_o be_v renounce_v the_o belief_n and_o practice_n of_o some_o few_o thing_n which_o all_o visible_a communion_n beside_o they_o do_v believe_v and_o practice_v can_v precise_o upon_o this_o account_n lie_v under_o the_o imputation_n of_o the_o sin_n of_o schism_n any_o more_o than_o the_o seven_o thousand_o that_o refuse_v to_o bow_v the_o knee_n to_o baal_n or_o those_o in_o the_o primitive_a time_n that_o refuse_v communion_n with_o the_o arrian_n church_n as_o do_v it_o upon_o conviction_n from_o scripture_n reason_n and_o antiquity_n that_o all_o the_o visible_a church_n of_o the_o world_n have_v in_o these_o observance_n swerve_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n reason_n and_o antiquity_n which_o be_v every_o where_o their_o plea._n 32._o mr._n chil._n p._n 265._o sect_n 32._o now_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o to_o leave_v the_o church_n and_o to_o leave_v her_o external_a communion_n be_v not_o the_o same_o that_o be_v do_v by_o cease_v to_o be_v a_o member_n of_o it_o that_o be_v by_o cease_v to_o have_v faith_n and_o obedience_n the_o requisite_n to_o make_v we_o such_o which_o can_v never_o be_v necessary_a this_o by_o refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o any_o church_n in_o her_o liturgy_n and_o public_a worship_n and_o indeed_o be_v these_o the_o same_o it_o must_v of_o necessity_n follow_v that_o no_o two_o church_n divide_v in_o external_a communion_n can_v be_v both_o true_a part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n 50._o mr._n chil._n p._n 271_o sect_n 50._o and_o consequent_o that_o either_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n which_o be_v thus_o divide_v from_o all_o other_o christian_n be_v no_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n or_o which_o be_v more_o uncharitable_a that_o all_o the_o church_n of_o christendom_n beside_o she_o must_v be_v exclude_v from_o be_v part_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n as_o be_v divide_v in_o external_a communion_n from_o the_o roman_a yea_o when_o the_o western_a and_o eastern_a church_n refuse_v communion_n with_o each_o other_o one_o of_o they_o present_o must_v be_v exclude_v from_o the_o catholic_n church_n yea_o it_o will_v follow_v that_o either_o there_o be_v some_o particular_a church_n that_o be_v by_o promise_n from_o god_n free_v from_o ever_o admit_v any_o superstition_n or_o corruption_n into_o her_o liturgy_n and_o public_a service_n or_o else_o that_o to_o separate_v from_o superstition_n and_o corruption_n creep_v into_o these_o particular_a church_n be_v to_o become_v no_o church_n which_o be_v as_o ridiculous_a as_o to_o say_v that_o to_o purge_v any_o person_n from_o those_o distemper_n which_o other_o labour_v under_o be_v to_o unman_v he_o indeed_o i_o know_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n pretend_v to_o be_v the_o guide_n of_o the_o faith_n of_o other_o to_o be_v secure_v from_o these_o corruption_n and_o consequent_o to_o be_v the_o root_n of_o union_n to_o other_o true_a orthodox_n church_n but_o this_o pretence_n be_v so_o assault_v by_o mr._n chil._n 20._o p._n 337._o sect_n 20._o that_o i_o be_o confident_a they_o be_v not_o able_a to_o stand_v out_o against_o the_o evidence_n of_o his_o reason_n thus_o than_o he_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o any_o christian_a heart_n can_v believe_v that_o not_o one_o among_o all_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v man_n very_o good_a and_o desirous_a to_o direct_v we_o in_o the_o sure_a way_n to_o heaven_n instruct_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o all_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o certain_o not_o ignorant_a of_o this_o most_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n shall_v add_v rei_fw-la memoriam_fw-la write_v this_o necessary_a doctrine_n plain_o so_o much_o as_o once_o certain_o in_o all_o reason_n they_o have_v provide_v much_o better_o for_o the_o good_a of_o christian_n if_o they_o have_v write_v this_o though_o they_o have_v write_v nothing_o else_o methinks_v the_o evangelist_n undertake_v to_o write_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n can_v not_o possible_o have_v omit_v any_o one_o of_o they_o especial_o this_o most_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n have_v they_o know_v it_o necessary_a st._n luke_n especial_o who_o plain_o profess_v that_o his_o intent_n be_v to_o write_v all_o thing_n necessary_a methinks_v st._n paul_n write_v to_o the_o roman_n can_v not_o but_o have_v congratulate_v this_o their_o privilege_n to_o they_o methinks_v instead_o of_o say_v your_o faith_n be_v speak_v of_o all_o the_o world_n over_o which_o he_o say_v also_o of_o the_o thessalonian_o he_o can_v not_o have_v fail_v to_o have_v tell_v they_o once_o at_o least_o in_o plain_a term_n that_o their_o faith_n be_v the_o rule_n for_o all_o the_o world_n for_o ever_o but_o then_o sure_o he_o will_v not_o have_v put_v they_o in_o fear_n of_o a_o impossibility_n as_o he_o do_v chap._n 11._o that_o they_o also_o nay_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o the_o gentile_n if_o they_o do_v not_o look_v to_o their_o stand_n may_v fall_v away_o to_o infidelity_n as_o the_o jew_n and_o do_v methinks_v in_o all_o his_o other_o epistle_n or_o at_o least_o in_o one_o of_o they_o he_o can_v not_o have_v fail_v to_o have_v give_v the_o world_n this_o direction_n have_v he_o know_v it_o to_o have_v be_v true_a that_o all_o man_n be_v to_o be_v guide_v by_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n and_o none_o to_o separate_v from_o it_o under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n methinks_v write_v so_o often_o of_o heretic_n and_o antichrist_n he_o shall_v have_v give_v the_o world_n this_o as_o you_o pretend_v only_o sure_a preservative_n from_o they_o how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o st._n peter_n write_v two_o catholic_n epistle_n mention_v his_o own_o departure_n write_v to_o preserve_v christian_n in_o the_o faith_n shall_v in_o neither_o of_o they_o commend_v they_o to_o the_o guidance_n of_o his_o pretend_a successor_n the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o st._n james_n and_o st._n judas_n in_o their_o catholic_n epistle_n shall_v not_o give_v this_o catholic_n direction_n methinks_v st._n john_n instead_o of_o say_v he_o that_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o christ_n be_v bear_v of_o god_n the_o force_n of_o which_o direction_n your_o gloss_n do_v quite_o enervate_a and_o make_v unavailable_a to_o discern_v who_o be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n shall_v have_v say_v he_o that_o adhere_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o live_v according_a to_o it_o he_o be_v a_o good_a christian_a and_o by_o this_o mark_v you_o shall_v know_v he_o what_o man_n not_o quite_o out_o of_o his_o wit_n if_o he_o consider_v as_o he_o shall_v the_o pretend_a necessity_n of_o this_o doctrine_n to_o salvation_n ordinary_o can_v possible_o force_v himself_o to_o conceive_v that_o all_o these_o good_a and_o holy_a man_n so_o desirous_a of_o man_n salvation_n shall_v be_v so_o deep_o and_o affect_o silent_a in_o this_o matter_n as_o
that_o not_o one_o of_o they_o shall_v say_v it_o plain_o so_o much_o as_o once_o but_o leave_v it_o to_o be_v collect_v from_o uncertain_a principle_n by_o many_o more_o uncertain_a consequence_n 5._o sect._n 6_o we_o say_v that_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o the_o english_a church_n separate_v from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n let_v mr._n c._n produce_v any_o one_o thing_n which_o we_o allege_v as_o a_o reason_n of_o our_o separation_n and_o show_v that_o it_o be_v hold_v as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n or_o practise_v in_o the_o public_a worship_n of_o all_o other_o church_n and_o then_o we_o shall_v acknowledge_v it_o 2._o we_o have_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o reform_a church_n much_o less_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o ourselves_o and_o therefore_o not_o from_o the_o universal_a of_o which_o both_o they_o and_o we_o be_v part_n and_o thus_o mr._n chil._n explain_v himself_o and_o tell_v you_o that_o his_o meaning_n be_v only_o this_o 295._o p._n 295._o that_o by_o a_o synecdoche_n of_o the_o whole_a for_o the_o part_n luther_n and_o his_o follower_n may_v be_v say_v to_o forsake_v this_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n but_o that_o proper_o speak_v he_o forsake_v the_o whole_a visible_a church_n viz._n as_o to_o external_a communion_n you_o must_v excuse_v i_o if_o i_o grant_v not_o and_o my_o reason_n be_v this_o because_o he_o and_o his_o follower_n be_v a_o part_n of_o this_o church_n and_o cease_v not_o to_o be_v so_o by_o their_o reformation_n now_o he_o and_o his_o follower_n certain_o forsake_v not_o themselves_o therefore_o not_o every_o part_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o not_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o what_o other_o plea_n can_v have_v be_v make_v by_o the_o church_n of_o jury_n in_o the_o day_n of_o elijah_n or_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n under_o the_o prevalency_n of_o arrianisme_n i_o understand_v not_o and_o what_o have_v mr._n c._n to_o evidence_n the_o contrary_a 1._o say_v he_o 262._o p._n 262._o a_o separation_n from_o any_o one_o true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o doctrine_n that_o be_v common_o hold_v by_o other_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o that_o member_n be_v indeed_o a_o separation_n from_o all_o church_n ans_fw-fr but_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o england_n a_o true_a member_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n for_o doctrine_n common_o hold_v by_o other_o church_n in_o communion_n with_o she_o ergo_fw-la she_o have_v separate_v from_o all_o church_n 2._o the_o argument_n evident_o suppose_v some_o of_o these_o untruth_n 1._o that_o a_o true_a member_n of_o a_o church_n or_o a_o particular_a true_a church_n can_v require_v unjust_a condition_n of_o communion_n or_o at_o lest_o can_v have_v any_o other_o to_o consent_v with_o she_o in_o these_o condition_n or_o that_o if_o she_o do_v it_o be_v unlawful_a for_o other_o to_o separate_v when_o such_o condition_n be_v require_v yea_o last_o it_o suppose_v the_o very_a thing_n in_o question_n that_o all_o true_a member_n in_o the_o church_n catholic_n must_v necessary_o communicate_v external_o with_o each_o other_o 2._o 48._o ibid._n reply_v p._n 47_o 48._o he_o tell_v we_o that_o calvin_n confess_v this_o separation_n which_o confession_n be_v consider_v by_o bishop_n bramhal_o 3._o say_v he_o no_o church_n can_v be_v find_v antecedent_n to_o our_o separation_n 263._o p._n 263._o with_o which_o we_o be_v join_v in_o external_a communion_n answ_n what_o inference_n do_v you_o make_v hence_o see_v we_o be_v join_v in_o internal_a communion_n with_o all_o the_o church_n of_o god_n and_o be_v willing_a external_o to_o do_v so_o if_o no_o unjust_a condition_n be_v require_v 2._o what_o think_v you_o of_o the_o church_n which_o reform_v before_o we_o ibid._n ibid._n again_o he_o add_v no_o church_n have_v law_n or_o governor_n in_o common_a with_o we_o answ_n what_o of_o all_o this_o be_v it_o necessary_a to_o our_o external_a communion_n that_o all_o the_o law_n or_o governor_n of_o other_o church_n shall_v be_v the_o same_o with_o we_o 2._o have_v not_o the_o eastern_a church_n the_o same_o governor_n with_o we_o ibid._n ibid._n repl._n they_o be_v manifest_o heretical_a answ_n this_o we_o constant_o deny_v as_o you_o may_v see_v in_o bishop_n bramhal_o 349._o reply_v p._n 349._o bishop_n morton_n apol._n dr._n field_n mr._n pagits_n christianography_n and_o other_o he_o proceed_v not_o one_o church_n can_v be_v find_v ibid._n ibid._n which_o will_v join_v with_o we_o in_o public_a office_n or_o we_o with_o they_o answ_n who_o tell_v you_o so_o bishop_n bramhal_o inform_v you_o that_o albeit_o the_o eastern_a church_n use_v many_o rite_n that_o we_o forbear_v yet_o this_o difference_n in_o rite_n be_v no_o breach_n of_o communion_n nor_o need_v to_o be_v for_o any_o thing_n he_o know_v if_o distance_n of_o place_n and_o difference_n of_o language_n be_v not_o a_o great_a impediment_n to_o our_o actual_a communion_n see_v we_o agree_v in_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o the_o same_o creed_n and_o no_o other_o nor_o do_v we_o require_v agreement_n in_o lesser_a matter_n as_o a_o condition_n of_o communion_n in_o which_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v extreme_o schismatical_a obj._n but_o their_o patriarch_n jeremiah_n refuse_v communion_n with_o we_o to_o this_o bishop_n bramhel_n reply_v in_o two_o full_a page_n that_o the_o thing_n be_v not_o true_a and_o 2._o that_o since_o his_o time_n cyril_n the_o patriarch_n have_v profess_v communion_n with_o we_o last_o say_v he_o sure_o they_o can_v not_o become_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la in_o communion_n with_o the_o grecian_a church_n by_o separate_v from_o the_o roman_a answ_n sure_o we_o may_v so_o as_o have_v since_o leave_v off_o to_o require_v those_o unjust_a condition_n or_o practice_v those_o unlawful_a thing_n which_o before_o we_o do_v require_v and_o practise_v 6._o the_o reason_n of_o our_o separation_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n sect._n 7_o be_v not_o so_o much_o because_o they_o maintain_v error_n and_o corruption_n as_o because_o they_o impose_v they_o 40._o chill_n p._n 267._o sect_n 40._o and_o will_v allow_v their_o communion_n to_o none_o but_o to_o those_o that_o will_v hold_v they_o and_o have_v so_o order_v that_o either_o we_o must_v communicate_v with_o they_o in_o these_o thing_n or_o nothing_o now_o this_o i_o hope_n be_v not_o a_o reason_n common_a to_o you_o with_o other_o church_n for_o what_o they_o hold_v they_o hold_v to_o themselves_o 106._o id._n ibid._n p._n 306._o sect_n 106._o and_o refuse_v not_o to_o communicate_v with_o they_o that_o hold_v the_o contrary_a so_o that_o we_o may_v continue_v in_o their_o communion_n without_o profess_v to_o believe_v their_o opinion_n but_o in_o you_o we_o can_v last_o sect._n 8_o be_v we_o schismatic_n for_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n for_o doctrine_n which_o be_v common_a to_o she_o christianography_n see_v pagits_n christianography_n with_o other_o church_n yet_o can_v it_o not_o be_v hence_o infer_v that_o we_o must_v close_v with_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n in_o all_o her_o unjust_a demand_n but_o only_o in_o those_o doctrine_n if_o there_o be_v any_o in_o which_o she_o have_v the_o consent_n of_o the_o eastern_a church_n and_o all_o other_o which_o we_o esteem_v the_o church_n of_o god_n again_o p._n 287._o sect_n 12._o sect._n 9_o we_o be_v tell_v that_o the_o article_n mention_v by_o the_o dr._n most_o of_o they_o have_v be_v express_o declare_v in_o former_a council_n and_o all_o be_v as_o old_a at_o least_o as_o christianity_n in_o england_n whence_o he_o infer_v that_o the_o english_a separation_n make_v from_o the_o roman_a church_n shall_v have_v be_v make_v on_o the_o same_o ground_n from_o the_o universal_a church_n above_o a_o thousand_o year_n since_o see_v it_o be_v evident_a that_o in_o st._n gregory_n time_n both_o eastern_a and_o western_a church_n be_v in_o perfect_a unity_n where_o not_o to_o take_v notice_n either_o 1._o of_o his_o false_a supposition_n that_o christianity_n in_o england_n be_v no_o old_a than_o st._n gregory_n or_o austin_n the_o monk_n when_o it_o be_v above_o two_o hundred_o year_n old_a than_o the_o very_o be_v of_o a_o monk_n nor_o 2._o of_o his_o ridiculous_a assertion_n that_o these_o article_n which_o we_o contend_v against_o be_v not_o new_a because_o most_o of_o they_o declare_v in_o former_a council_n when_o as_o i_o be_o confident_a he_o must_v sink_v down_o as_o low_o as_o a_o thousand_o year_n to_o make_v this_o good_a let_v he_o cite_v any_o council_n express_o declare_v for_o any_o of_o these_o article_n except_v the_o celibacy_n of_o priest_n and_o the_o worship_n of_o image_n which_o be_v as_o evident_a a_o innovation_n as_o any_o possible_o can_v be_v nor_o 3._o to_o mind_v
intimate_v and_o will_v have_v the_o learned_a dr._n guilty_a of_o the_o same_o blunder_n 309_o mr._n cr._n p._n 309_o albeit_o he_o have_v not_o one_o syllable_n whence_o he_o can_v infer_v it_o but_o calixtus_n the_o second_o who_o live_v an._n dom._n 1119._o 67_o sim._n dunelm_n in_o chron._n lib._n 20._o math._n paris_n in_o hen._n 1._o pag._n 67_o who_o in_o a_o synod_n hold_v at_o rome_n an._n dom._n 1120._o make_v this_o decree_n that_o presbyter_n deacon_n and_o subdeacon_n shall_v be_v altogether_o interdict_v the_o cohibitation_n of_o concubine_n and_o wife_n chap._n xxiv_o particular_a nation_n have_v a_o power_n to_o purge_v themselves_o from_o their_o corruption_n sect_n 1._o mr._n c's_o limitation_n consider_v ib._n the_o example_n of_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n for_o it_o sect_n 2._o of_o carolus_n magnus_n sect_n 3._o mr._n c_o '_o s._n evasion_n obviate_v sect_n 4._o the_o testimony_n of_o balsamon_n sect_n 5._o the_o example_n of_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n vindicate_v sect_n 6._o mr._n c_o '_o s._n objection_n answer_v sect_n 7_o 8._o the_o history_n of_o the_o reformation_n sect_n 9_o we_o may_v reform_v without_o synodal_n concurrence_n sect_n 10._o in_o the_o consideration_n of_o this_o twenty_o four_o chapter_n sect._n 1_o i_o will_v use_v as_o few_o word_n as_o possible_a and_o first_o whereas_o the_o dr._n have_v say_v that_o by_o the_o concession_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a popish_a writer_n particular_a nation_n have_v still_o a_o power_n to_o purge_v themselves_o from_o their_o corruption_n as_o well_o in_o the_o church_n 285._o mr._n c._n p._n 285._o as_o in_o the_o state_n without_o leave_n have_v from_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n this_o say_v he_o be_v willing_o grant_v but_o then_o 1._o he_o will_v not_o have_v they_o grant_v such_o a_o power_n of_o purgation_n against_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n answ_n as_o if_o they_o who_o have_v power_n to_o do_v this_o without_o the_o leave_n of_o the_o see_v of_o rome_n may_v not_o do_v it_o with_o a_o non_fw-la obstante_fw-la to_o the_o contradiction_n of_o that_o see_n 2._o be_v all_o the_o decree_n and_o statute_n of_o the_o german_a spanish_a gallican_n church_n against_o the_o encroachment_n of_o the_o pope_n his_o indulgence_n his_o bull_n etc._n etc._n so_o large_o insist_v upon_o by_o bishop_n bramhal_o make_v by_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o roman_a see_v do_v she_o not_o with_o great_a violence_n oppose_v they_o second_o say_v he_o do_v they_o allow_v this_o liberty_n against_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n catholic_n ibid._n ibid._n answ_n we_o have_v show_v that_o we_o do_v not_o separate_v from_o the_o whole_a church_n catholic_n but_o be_v constrain_v by_o your_o obstinacy_n in_o impose_v on_o we_o unjust_a condition_n of_o communion_n refuse_v to_o communicate_v with_o you_o the_o most_o ulcerate_v part_n of_o the_o church_n catholic_n upon_o these_o term_n 2._o when_o the_o church_n in_o athanasius_n his_o day_n be_v overrun_v with_o arrianism_n the_o church_n of_o israel_n in_o the_o day_n of_o the_o prophet_n elias_n with_o idolatry_n be_v it_o not_o lawful_a for_o particular_a church_n and_o particular_a tribe_n to_o purge_v themselves_o from_o those_o corruption_n 3._o what_o promise_n have_v we_o what_o evidence_n to_o assure_v we_o that_o there_o never_o be_v can_v nor_o will_v be_v any_o superstition_n in_o all_o the_o liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n if_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o there_o be_v such_o promise_n we_o must_v call_v upon_o you_o to_o produce_v they_o if_o not_o then_o may_v there_o have_v be_v cause_n of_o our_o alter_v some_o thing_n which_o be_v universal_o practise_v in_o the_o visible_a church_n at_o the_o time_n of_o our_o reformation_n when_o we_o return_v to_o that_o primitive_a purity_n that_o be_v more_o or_o less_o desert_v by_o it_o three_o ibid._n ibid._n not_o a_o purgation_n quoth_v he_o from_o the_o whole_a faith_n and_o discipline_n in_o any_o thing_n they_o think_v fit_a to_o be_v rectify_v that_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o council_n and_o law_n of_o prince_n have_v be_v receive_v and_o enforce_v ever_o since_o this_o nation_n be_v christian_n and_o by_o which_o they_o declare_v themselves_o member_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n answ_n every_o word_n be_v a_o misadventure_n for_o neither_o be_v the_o chief_a thing_n reform_v by_o we_o as_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o idolatry_n of_o image_n the_o sacrilege_n in_o withhold_a the_o cup_n etc._n etc._n decree_v by_o any_o council_n establish_v by_o any_o law_n of_o prince_n or_o receive_v by_o we_o at_o the_o first_o conversion_n of_o the_o nation_n as_o we_o have_v sufficient_o evince_v much_o less_o do_v the_o assert_v of_o they_o declare_v we_o member_n of_o that_o catholic_n church_n which_o never_o own_v they_o but_o detest_v they_o four_o ibid._n ibid._n he_o tell_v we_o that_o we_o can_v produce_v one_o example_n either_o of_o state_n or_o prince_n that_o ever_o make_v any_o law_n to_o repeal_v any_o doctrine_n declare_v or_o discipline_n establish_v in_o the_o church_n answ_n if_o he_o speak_v of_o a_o particular_a church_n it_o be_v so_o palpable_a a_o untruth_n that_o i_o will_v not_o disparage_v any_o reader_n so_o much_o as_o to_o think_v he_o need_v a_o instance_n to_o the_o contrary_a if_o of_o the_o whole_a catholic_n church_n it_o concern_v not_o we_o for_o never_o will_v he_o be_v able_a to_o evince_v that_o we_o have_v do_v so_o or_o if_o we_o have_v do_v so_o in_o slight_a matter_n where_o they_o have_v swerve_v from_o scripture_n and_o primitive_a antiquity_n how_o be_v we_o blame-worthy_a in_o so_o do_v have_v not_o your_o trent_n council_n decree_v against_o the_o necessity_n of_o give_v the_o eucharist_n to_o infant_n which_o yet_o be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n in_o the_o four_o century_n have_v you_o not_o lay_v aside_o some_o ceremony_n which_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v practise_v universal_o last_o ibid._n ibid._n you_o say_v that_o the_o purgation_n concede_v and_o execute_v by_o prince_n true_o catholic_n be_v to_o extirpate_v all_o innovation_n in_o doctrine_n all_o transgression_n of_o discipline_n that_o swerve_v from_o the_o decree_n and_o ordination_n of_o the_o church_n and_o no_o other_o answ_n the_o purgation_n execute_v by_o our_o prince_n be_v true_o so_o and_o this_o we_o constant_o assert_v let_v queen_n elizabeth_n speak_v in_o she_o own_o behalf_n england_n say_v she_o have_v embrace_v no_o new_a religion_n 36._o cambdens_n annal_n of_o eliz._n p._n 35_o 36._o nor_o any_o other_o then_o that_o which_o jesus_n christ_n have_v command_v that_o the_o primitive_a and_o catholic_n church_n have_v exercise_v and_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v always_o with_o one_o voice_n and_o one_o mind_n approve_v and_o 1._o sect._n 2_o touch_v the_o emperor_n justinian_n the_o first_o instance_n produce_v by_o the_o dr._n let_v it_o be_v only_o consider_v that_o it_o be_v he_o who_o banish_a pope_n silverius_n who_o create_v justiniana_n prima_fw-la and_o carthage_n new_a patriarchates_n by_o his_o imperial_a power_n who_o make_v so_o many_o law_n contrary_a to_o the_o decree_n of_o former_a synod_n and_o for_o the_o correction_n limitation_n or_o right_o order_v thereof_o who_o make_v so_o many_o law_n concern_v ecclesiastical_a person_n and_o benefice_n and_o holy_a order_n and_o appeal_n and_o the_o patronage_n of_o church_n concern_v religion_n the_o creed_n sacrament_n heresy_n excommunicate_v all_o heretic_n and_o that_o of_o nestorius_n and_o eutyches_n in_o particular_a ordain_v that_o if_o the_o follower_n of_o they_o do_v not_o return_v after_o warn_v give_v by_o virtue_n of_o his_o edict_n they_o shall_v have_v no_o favour_n t●●●_n l._n cum_fw-la recta_fw-la c._n de_fw-fr summa_fw-la t●●●_n or_o pardon_v but_o be_v condemn_v and_o punish_v as_o convict_v and_o denounce_v heretic_n who_o make_v so_o many_o law_n touch_v schism_n sanctuary_n simony_n and_o all_o other_o matter_n of_o ecclesiastical_a cognizance_n yea_o who_o express_o say_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 133._o novel_a 133._o that_o nothing_o come_v amiss_o to_o the_o prince_n every_o thing_n be_v under_o his_o royal_a cognizance_n i_o say_v if_o this_o be_v consider_v justinian_n alone_o if_o all_o other_o precedent_n be_v lose_v be_v sufficient_a to_o evince_v this_o political_a supremacy_n of_o sovereign_a prince_n over_o the_o church_n within_o their_o own_o dominion_n and_o consequent_o to_o justify_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n which_o mr._n c._n tell_v we_o we_o can_v hence_o justify_v there_o be_v nothing_o ascribe_v to_o his_o majesty_n thereby_o 290._o see_v mr._n c._n p._n 290._o but_o only_o political_a supremacy_n as_o be_v excellent_o evince_v by_o bishop_n bramhal_o 290._o rep._n p._n 290._o yea_o 2._o to_o justify_v our_o reformation_n it_o be_v only_o to_o the_o cast_v out_o of_o
innovation_n in_o doctrine_n and_o irregularity_n in_o manner_n which_o be_v the_o confess_a purpose_n of_o these_o law_n second_o for_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o great_a which_o be_v the_o doctor_n second_o instance_n we_o be_v tell_v by_o the_o emperor_n himself_o that_o he_o convocate_v bishop_n to_o counsel_v he_o how_o god_n law_n and_o christian_a religion_n shall_v be_v recover_v jun._n apud_fw-la surium_n die_v 5._o jun._n therefore_o say_v he_o by_o the_o council_n of_o my_o religious_a prelate_n and_o my_o noble_n we_o have_v appoint_v bishop_n in_o every_o city_n and_o boniface_n their_o archbishop_n and_o appoint_v that_o a_o synod_n shall_v be_v hold_v every_o year_n that_o in_o our_o presence_n the_o canonical_a decree_n and_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o church_n may_v be_v restore_v and_o christian_a religion_n may_v be_v reform_v yea_o he_o tell_v we_o that_o he_o reside_v in_o his_o council_n not_o only_o as_o a_o hearer_n but_o judge_v also_o and_o by_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n determine_v and_o decree_v what_o be_v to_o be_v hold_v in_o these_o inquiry_n 3._o part._n 1._o pag._n 3._o as_o you_o may_v find_v in_o the_o collection_n of_o goldastus_n yea_o he_o make_v a_o decree_n against_o the_o worship_v of_o image_n and_o give_v sentence_n against_o the_o second_o nicene_n council_n in_o this_o particular_a and_o to_o add_v no_o more_o in_o the_o preface_n of_o his_o capitulary_a he_o speak_v on_o this_o wise_a to_o the_o clergy_n of_o his_o empire_n we_o have_v send_v our_o deputy_n unto_o you_o to_o the_o intent_n that_o they_o by_o our_o authority_n may_v together_o with_o you_o correct_v what_o shall_v stand_v in_o need_n of_o correction_n we_o have_v also_o add_v certain_a chapter_n of_o canonical_a ordinance_n such_o as_o we_o think_v to_o beemost_a necessary_a for_o you_o let_v no_o man_n i_o entreat_v you_o think_v or_o censure_n this_o pious_a admonition_n for_o presumptuous_a whereby_o we_o force_v ourselves_o to_o correct_v what_o be_v amiss_o to_o cut_v off_o what_o be_v superfluous_a and_o brief_o to_o compact_v what_o be_v good_a but_o rather_o let_v every_o man_n receive_v it_o with_o a_o willing_a mind_n of_o charity_n for_o we_o have_v read_v in_o the_o book_n of_o king_n how_o joas_n endeavour_v to_o restore_v the_o kingdom_n which_o god_n have_v give_v he_o to_o the_o service_n of_o the_o true_a god_n by_o go_v about_o it_o by_o correct_v and_o admonish_v it_o so_o that_o here_o we_o have_v he_o not_o only_o act_v as_o high_a as_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n will_v allow_v our_o prince_n but_o particular_o by_o the_o council_n of_o his_o prelate_n and_o his_o noble_n act_v for_o the_o recovery_n and_o reformation_n of_o religion_n yea_o without_o synodal_n authority_n cut_v off_o what_o be_v superfluous_a correct_v what_o be_v amiss_o and_o justify_v himself_o by_o the_o example_n of_o king_n joas_n who_o undoubted_o reform_a religion_n itself_o 7._o c._n 24._o sect_n 7._o as_o our_o author_n confess_v of_o the_o king_n of_o judah_n now_o to_o these_o thing_n what_o answer_n be_v return_v by_o mr._n sect._n 4_o c._n but_o that_o these_o law_n be_v all_o regulate_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o present_a church_n in_o their_o time_n that_o they_o be_v only_o the_o reduction_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o church_n into_o imperial_a law_n that_o they_o be_v never_o intend_v as_o act_n of_o a_o absolute_a ecclesiastical_a supremacy_n but_o as_o consequence_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n and_o that_o this_o will_v be_v find_v a_o truth_n by_o any_o one_o who_o cast_v a_o eye_n upon_o those_o law_n potest_fw-la de_fw-fr imperio_fw-la sum_fw-la potest_fw-la now_o this_o be_v evident_o otherwise_o for_o as_o grotius_n tell_v we_o justinian_n make_v new_a patriarchates_n ordain_v they_o shall_v enjoy_v the_o full_a right_n of_o a_o patriarchate_n contrary_a to_o the_o twelve_o canon_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n alter_v the_o canon_n touch_v the_o election_n of_o bishop_n which_o be_v very_o usual_a for_o emperor_n to_o do_v as_o tollet_fw-la there_o confess_v to_o omit_v many_o other_o instance_n of_o like_a kind_n and_o as_o for_o charles_n the_o great_a he_o tell_v we_o from_o bochellus_n that_o it_o be_v very_o well_o know_v that_o ancient_o as_o oft_o as_o synod_n be_v assemble_v their_o decree_n be_v not_o ratify_v till_o approve_v by_o the_o king_n in_o his_o privy_a counsel_n and_o if_o any_o thing_n there_o displease_v they_o be_v explode_v which_o say_v he_o from_o the_o council_n of_o tours_n cabilonensi_fw-la cabilonensi_fw-la and_o chaloun_n under_o charles_n the_o great_a we_o have_v already_o demonstrate_v thus_o bochellus_n yea_o far_o the_o same_o emperor_n add_v to_o the_o senate_n hold_v in_o theodonis-villa_n and_o give_v we_o notice_n that_o he_o do_v so_o by_o annex_v or_o prefix_v of_o this_o clause_n hoc_fw-la de_fw-la nostro_fw-la adjicimus_fw-la but_o i_o will_v not_o trouble_v myself_o any_o further_a to_o insist_v on_o this_o see_v the_o same_o grotius_n have_v abundant_o evince_v in_o his_o seven_o chapter_n their_o power_n to_o rescind_v and_o amend_v these_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n and_o that_o this_o power_n be_v adjudge_v to_o they_o as_o their_o right_n by_o the_o synod_n thus_o convene_v by_o they_o but_o 2._o be_v it_o so_o that_o these_o imperial_a law_n be_v the_o church_n faith_n and_o canon_n for_o discipline_n and_o consequence_n of_o the_o church_n authority_n then_o must_v it_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o decree_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a against_o worship_v of_o image_n and_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n faith_n a_o consequence_n of_o her_o authority_n 70._o justin_n nov_n 123._o s._n ad_fw-la haec_fw-la jubemus_fw-la carol._n make_fw-mi capit_fw-la l._n 1._o c._n 70._o and_o regulate_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o present_a church_n and_o the_o decree_n both_o of_o justinian_n and_o carolus_n magnus_n that_o divine_a service_n shall_v be_v celebrate_v in_o the_o vulgar_a tongue_n as_o be_v require_v to_o be_v celebrate_v so_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o by_o god_n himself_o who_o will_v require_v a_o account_n of_o they_o who_o shall_v do_v otherwise_o at_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n the_o prerogative_n give_v by_o justinian_n to_o the_o bishop_n of_o carthage_n notwithstanding_o the_o pretension_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o the_o contrary_a must_v be_v all_o action_n regulate_v by_o the_o church_n of_o their_o time_n and_o according_a to_o the_o faith_n and_o discipline_n of_o the_o same_o and_o what_o have_v he_o to_o persuade_v we_o that_o what_o he_o say_v be_v the_o very_a truth_n as_o to_o the_o practice_n of_o charlemagne_n just_o nothing_o and_o for_o the_o emperor_n justinian_n as_o bad_a as_o nothing_o for_o what_o say_v he_o but_o that_o the_o rule_n of_o the_o holy_a council_n viz._n the_o four_o first_o general_n council_n shall_v obtain_v the_o force_n of_o law_n for_o their_o doctrine_n we_o receive_v say_v he_o as_o the_o holy_a scripture_n themselves_o and_o their_o rule_n we_o observe_v as_o law_n ergo_fw-la all_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o code_n and_o novel_n of_o justinian_n though_o make_v touch_v sundry_a thing_n of_o which_o the_o church_n have_v prescribe_v nothing_o be_v regulate_v by_o the_o law_n of_o the_o present_a church_n again_o our_o law_n disdain_v not_o to_o follow_v the_o holy_a and_o divine_a rule_n that_o be_v such_o of_o they_o as_o require_v only_a thing_n determine_v by_o former_a council_n ergo_fw-la they_o be_v not_o intend_v any_o of_o they_o as_o act_n of_o a_o absolute_a ecclesiastical_a supremacy_n but_o all_o of_o they_o as_o consequence_n of_o the_o church_n supremacy_n balsamon_n must_v be_v call_v a_o malicious_a schismatic_a sect._n 5_o tho_o mr._n 283._o mr._n c._n p._n 283._o c._n will_v be_v angry_a if_o we_o call_v he_o so_o and_o then_o we_o must_v be_v tell_v that_o he_o say_v only_o that_o the_o emperor_n have_v a_o inspection_n over_o the_o church_n trullo_n ball_n in_o c._n 38.6_o syn._n in_o trullo_n so_o that_o he_o can_v limit_v or_o extend_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o metropolitan_o erect_v new_a one_o etc._n etc._n answ_n but_o this_o etc._n etc._n cut_v off_o the_o most_o material_a part_n of_o the_o sentence_n which_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o emperor_n may_v not_o only_o set_v a_o form_n for_o the_o election_n of_o bishop_n but_o for_o other_o administration_n of_o they_o so_o as_o he_o shall_v think_v good_a which_o perfect_o reach_v the_o king_n supremacy_n nor_o be_v this_o all_o that_o be_v there_o say_v but_o we_o be_v tell_v moreover_o that_o it_o be_v fit_v the_o ecclesiastical_a order_n shall_v follow_v the_o civil_a command_n and_o therefore_o how_o mr._n c._n will_v acquit_v himself_o from_o a_o untruth_n i_o be_o not_o able_a to_o divine_v if_o balsamon_n here_o have_v not_o
that_o be_v the_o fault_n of_o the_o reformer_n say_v the_o dr._n not_o at_o all_o of_o the_o reformation_n add_v to_o this_o the_o king_n protest_v he_o reform_v out_o of_o conscience_n his_o marriage_n be_v pronounce_v unlawful_a by_o seven_o university_n beside_o our_o own_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o canterbury_n london_n winchester_n bath_n lincoln_n 245._o bishop_n bramhals_n reply_v p._n 245._o all_o the_o cardinal_n of_o rome_n oppose_v the_o dispensation_n and_o yet_o the_o put_v away_o of_o this_o wife_n must_v be_v call_v a_o carnal_a interest_n yea_o our_o freedom_n from_o their_o superstitious_a austerity_n and_o prayer_n the_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n the_o allow_v one_o wife_n with_o the_o apostle_n paul_n unto_o the_o clergy_n to_o prevent_v burn_v fornication_n or_o many_o concubine_n this_o must_v be_v call_v a_o carnal_a interest_n and_o as_o if_o this_o have_v not_o be_v sufficient_a we_o must_v be_v ask_v whether_o any_o such_o interest_n as_o these_o be_v operative_a in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n he_o will_v ask_v we_o next_o i_o suppose_v whether_o we_o dare_v affirm_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n in_o heaven_n or_o a_o sun_n in_o the_o firmament_n for_o let_v any_o man_n read_v the_o history_n of_o that_o council_n and_o the_o review_n of_o it_o write_v by_o a_o learned_a roman_a catholic_n and_o he_o will_v find_v the_o many_o carnal_a interest_n of_o that_o council_n to_o be_v as_o apparent_a chap._n xxv_o protestant_n not_o oblige_v to_o be_v opponent_n sect_n 1._o mr._n c's_o ridiculous_a argument_n sect_n 2._o his_o condition_n impose_v upon_o the_o replyer_n sect_n 3._o a_o answer_n to_o the_o first_o ibid._n to_o the_o second_o sect_n 4._o to_o the_o three_o sect_n 5_o 6._o to_o the_o four_o sect_n 7._o what_o condition_n we_o require_v from_o he_o sect_n 8._o in_o the_o six_o sect_n sect._n 1_o of_o his_o twenty_o six_o chap._n we_o be_v tell_v that_o catholic_n can_v be_v oblige_v to_o produce_v their_o evidence_n for_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o doctrine_n but_o protestant_n must_v produce_v they_o against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n answ_n this_o be_v very_o unreasonable_a for_o see_v it_o be_v acknowledge_v that_o the_o church_n can_v propose_v no_o other_o doctrine_n to_o be_v believe_v 235._o mr._n c._n p._n 235._o than_o such_o as_o either_o be_v express_o or_o at_o least_o in_o their_o immediate_a necessary_a principle_n contain_v in_o divine_a revelation_n it_o follow_v that_o what_o doctrine_n they_o propose_v to_o we_o to_o be_v believe_v they_o must_v be_v propose_v as_o such_o and_o our_o assent_n must_v be_v require_v to_o they_o as_o such_o and_o such_o a_o assent_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n require_v of_o we_o to_o all_o the_o particular_n dispute_v in_o this_o book_n now_o see_v to_o assent_v to_o they_o as_o such_o without_o evidence_n that_o they_o be_v so_o be_v evident_o to_o lie_v and_o say_v the_o lord_n say_v when_o he_o have_v not_o say_v it_o be_v it_o not_o sufficient_a for_o we_o to_o answer_v the_o argument_n that_o be_v bring_v to_o conclude_v they_o divine_a revelation_n see_v by_o so_o do_v we_o evince_n that_o to_o be_v rquire_v to_o assent_v to_o they_o be_v to_o be_v require_v to_o lie_v and_o therefore_o see_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n require_v this_o assent_n to_o they_o as_o a_o condition_n of_o her_o communion_n she_o must_v demonstrate_v that_o she_o have_v reason_n so_o to_o do_v or_o else_o acknowledge_v her_o condition_n be_v unjust_a as_o be_v the_o profession_n of_o a_o lie_n we_o be_v tell_v indeed_o that_o you_o be_v in_o possession_n of_o those_o doctrine_n or_o most_o of_o they_o for_o above_o a_o thousand_o year_n but_o to_o this_o mr._n dally_n return_v this_o satisfactory_a answer_n in_o civilibus_fw-la causis_fw-la ubi_fw-la jus_o possessionis_fw-la valet_fw-la qui_fw-la possidet_fw-la pulsatur_fw-la &_o loco_fw-la quem_fw-la tenet_fw-la cedere_fw-la compellitur_fw-la in_fw-la nostro_fw-la hoc_fw-la negotio_fw-la planè_fw-la contra_fw-la res_fw-la habet_fw-la qui_fw-la se_fw-la possessores_fw-la esse_fw-la affirmant_fw-la two_o nos_fw-la petunt_fw-la id_fw-la agunt_fw-la id_fw-la urgent_a ac_fw-la contendunt_fw-la ut_fw-la nos_fw-la svam_fw-la illam_fw-la quam_fw-la jactunt_fw-la possessionem_fw-la secum_fw-la adeamus_fw-la postulant_fw-la enim_fw-la a_o nobis_fw-la ut_fw-la secum_fw-la eadem_fw-la de_fw-la religione_fw-la sentiamus_fw-la hancque_fw-la svam_fw-la a_o majoribus_fw-la acceptam_fw-la de_fw-la religione_fw-la sententiam_fw-la possessionem_fw-la svam_fw-la appellant_n ergo_fw-la si_fw-la causae_fw-la totius_fw-la ingenium_fw-la si_fw-la ipsa_fw-la rei_fw-la natura_fw-la ac_fw-la ratio_fw-la penitius_fw-la consideretur_fw-la liquet_fw-la istos_fw-la proprie_fw-la esse_fw-la actores_fw-la unde_fw-la sequitur_fw-la cum_fw-la actoris_fw-la sit_fw-la id_fw-la quod_fw-la intendit_fw-la probare_fw-la omnino_fw-la hoc_fw-la istis_fw-la incumbere_fw-la ut_fw-la veris_fw-la legitimisque_fw-la rationibus_fw-la demonstrent_fw-la nos_fw-la jure_fw-la teneri_fw-la ad_fw-la eam_fw-la ad_fw-la quam_fw-la ab_fw-la ipsis_fw-la vocamur_fw-la possessionem_fw-la incundam_fw-la dal._n l._n 1._o the_o demonst_a fidei_fw-la ex_fw-la scripture_n c._n 4._o you_o go_v on_o and_o say_v that_o the_o pope_n have_v enjoy_v a_o authority_n and_o supremacy_n of_o jurisdiction_n a_o long_a time_n than_o any_o succession_n of_o prince_n can_v pretend_v to_o a_o jurisdiction_n acknowledge_v as_o of_o divine_a right_n and_o as_o such_o submit_v to_o by_o all_o our_o ancestor_n not_o only_o as_o englishman_n but_o as_o neighbour_n of_o the_o whole_a western_a patriarchate_n yea_o of_o the_o universal_a church_n and_o this_o as_o far_o as_o any_o record_n can_v be_v produce_v now_o 1._o see_v dr._n hammond_n have_v so_o large_o consider_v this_o pretence_n and_o so_o abundant_o prove_v that_o in_o the_o notion_n wherein_o mr._n c._n maintain_v this_o supremacy_n viz._n from_o divine_a right_n it_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o the_o feeble_a plea_n of_o possession_n in_o this_o nation_n nor_o ever_o appear_v to_o have_v have_v be_v it_o not_o a_o wonder_n that_o notwithstanding_o all_o that_o he_o have_v say_v to_o the_o contrary_a sect_n 2_o 3_o 4_o 5._o of_o his_o four_o chap._n this_o possession_n shall_v be_v assert_v without_o the_o least_o ground_n of_o proof_n 2._o this_o may_v have_v be_v urge_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o reformation_n but_o now_o his_o majesty_n and_o his_o bishop_n be_v in_o possession_n and_o therefore_o by_o your_o own_o ground_n be_v not_o bind_v to_o produce_v their_o evidence_n but_o you_o who_o seek_v to_o dispossess_v they_o if_o you_o say_v with_o s._n w._n that_o in_o thing_n of_o divine_a institution_n 50._o p._n 50._o against_o which_o no_o prescription_n plead_v he_o only_o can_v pretend_v possession_n of_o any_o thing_n who_o can_v stand_v upon_o it_o that_o he_o have_v have_v it_o near_o christ_n time_n we_o answ_n be_v it_o so_o yet_o must_v their_o title_n stand_v good_a till_o you_o can_v evidence_n that_o you_o have_v have_v it_o near_o christ_n time_n than_o they_o which_o you_o will_v never_o be_v able_a to_o do_v 3._o see_v this_o title_n be_v hold_v by_o divine_a right_n and_o no_o other_o pleadable_a be_v it_o not_o evidence_n sufficient_a against_o this_o plea_n to_o show_v that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o right_n for_o it_o to_o build_v on_o which_o be_v do_v by_o answer_v the_o argument_n that_o plead_v for_o it_o 4._o if_o it_o have_v be_v our_o part_n to_o oppose_v we_o doubt_v not_o to_o prove_v it_o a_o possession_n malae_fw-la fidei_fw-la 29._o sch._n this_fw-mi p._n 29._o by_o the_o equality_n of_o power_n give_v by_o christ_n to_o the_o apostle_n by_o the_o unreasonableness_n that_o those_o other_o apostle_n which_o survive_v st._n peter_n shall_v be_v subject_v to_o his_o successor_n bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o yet_o they_o must_v have_v be_v if_o the_o universal_a pastorship_n be_v derive_v to_o they_o by_o tenure_n of_o that_o succession_n and_o by_o the_o many_o age_n before_o the_o power_n or_o title_n of_o universal_a pastor_n be_v assume_v and_o wherein_o it_o be_v disclaim_v as_o anti-christian_n last_o when_o the_o dispute_n be_v whether_o our_o separation_n from_o your_o church_n be_v the_o sin_n of_o schism_n herein_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o we_o shall_v be_v any_o other_o than_o defendant_n or_o you_o any_o other_o than_o opponent_n for_o when_o you_o accuse_v we_o of_o schism_n sure_o you_o be_v bind_v to_o prove_v or_o make_v this_o accusation_n good_a and_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o to_o answer_v all_o that_o you_o bring_v against_o we_o your_o seven_o sect_n be_v the_o strange_a inconsequence_n imaginable_a put_v it_o into_o syllogism_n and_o it_o run_v thus_o if_o protestant_n acknowledge_v that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n be_v in_o all_o fundamental_o infallible_a that_o be_v that_o some_o member_n of_o those_o that_o profess_v the_o christian_a faith_n shall_v be_v keep_v in_o all_o truth_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n then_o must_v the_o proof_n that_o
council_n have_v decree_v against_o the_o millenary_a reign_n which_o most_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n hold_v you_o have_v explode_v as_o ridiculous_a last_o the_o sentence_n of_o the_o purge_a fire_n which_o be_v to_o try_v and_o purify_v all_o man_n even_o the_o most_o holy_a you_o have_v deserve_o reject_v whereas_o upon_o these_o three_o opinion_n do_v almost_o all_o the_o prayer_n of_o the_o ancient_n depend_v and_o how_o then_o can_v you_o be_v say_v to_o have_v retain_v the_o prayer_n which_o the_o ancient_n use_v albeit_o you_o retain_v some_o of_o their_o word_n who_o have_v whole_o reject_v those_o opinion_n upon_o which_o they_o do_v depend_v i_o confess_v there_o be_v some_o other_o end_n which_o i_o have_v mention_v above_o of_o the_o ancient_n prayer_n as_o the_o obtain_v a_o happy_a resurrection_n the_o augmentation_n of_o their_o glory_n at_o the_o union_n of_o their_o soul_n and_o body_n the_o blot_v out_o of_o their_o sin_n at_o the_o day_n of_o refreshment_n that_o they_o may_v find_v mercy_n in_o that_o day_n and_o will_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n pray_v for_o they_o to_o these_o end_n and_o these_o alone_a we_o will_v very_o hearty_o join_v with_o she_o but_o she_o have_v add_v new_a end_n of_o her_o own_o devise_v as_o the_o satisfaction_n of_o god_n justice_n the_o procure_a pardon_n of_o venial_a sin_n not_o former_o remit_v and_o a_o release_n from_o a_o purgatorian_a fire_n which_o she_o have_v kindle_v and_o be_v it_o meet_v that_o we_o who_o have_v reject_v together_o with_o they_o these_o prayer_n as_o ground_v upon_o such_o opinion_n which_o have_v confess_v antiquity_n to_o plead_v for_o they_o shall_v embrace_v they_o again_o upon_o such_o ground_n as_o be_v not_o only_o manifest_o false_a but_o also_o void_a of_o all_o shadow_n of_o antiquity_n to_o p._n 189._o l._n 34._o add_v nor_o be_v it_o ever_o say_v in_o scripture_n that_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n be_v receive_v unworthy_o but_o only_o that_o the_o bread_n and_o cup_n be_v so_o further_o be_v it_o say_v so_o yet_o will_v not_o your_o transubstantiation_n follow_v hence_o without_o beg_v the_o main_a dispute_n betwixt_o we_o viz._n whether_o such_o a_o passage_n must_v be_v understand_v literal_o and_o rigid_o or_o according_a to_o the_o custom_n of_o sacramental_a phrase_n that_o be_v figurative_o and_o spiritual_o last_o if_o they_o that_o despise_v the_o apostle_n be_v say_v to_o despise_v christ_n because_o they_o be_v commissionated_a from_o he_o as_o we_o have_v it_o mat._n 18.5_o and_o he_o that_o offend_v a_o weak_a brother_n be_v say_v to_o offend_v against_o christ_n because_o he_o do_v it_o against_o one_o of_o his_o member_n why_o may_v not_o he_o that_o participate_v the_o sacramental_a element_n unworthy_o be_v say_v to_o receive_v christ_n body_n so_o as_o receive_v that_o which_o represent_v and_o signify_v his_o body_n and_o offer_v to_o the_o receiver_n faith_n all_o the_o benefit_n thereof_o 2._o the_o confirmation_n of_o all_o that_o i_o have_v cite_v from_o dr._n hoyle_n may_v be_v see_v in_o the_o margin_n of_o the_o place_n cite_v after_o p._n 211._o l._n 17._o add_v we_o have_v something_o allege_v p._n 304_o 305._o in_o defence_n of_o this_o half_a communion_n which_o here_o may_v proper_o be_v consider_v we_o be_v tell_v 1._o that_o the_o protestant_n use_v sprinkle_v instead_o of_o dip_v answ_n this_o be_v elenchus_a parium_n for_o 1._o albeit_o the_o apostle_n use_v dip_v yet_o do_v not_o either_o they_o or_o our_o saviour_n command_v it_o he_o never_o say_v dip_v all_o that_o you_o baptise_v as_o he_o say_v drink_v you_o all_o of_o this_o and_o therefore_o that_o he_o and_o his_o disciple_n baptise_a in_o river_n and_o by_o dip_v will_v no_o more_o infer_v that_o we_o shall_v do_v so_o then_o that_o they_o say_v down_o at_o this_o supper_n or_o use_v a_o clinical_a gesture_n will_v infer_v that_o we_o shall_v use_v it_o 2._o dip_v be_v no_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n but_o a_o mode_n or_o circumstance_n and_o therefore_o variable_a but_o the_o cup_n be_v a_o essential_a or_o at_o least_o integral_a part_n of_o the_o sacrament_n as_o be_v full_o evidence_v by_o crocius_n in_o his_o antibec_n p._n 214_o 215._o 3._o this_o we_o do_v in_o case_n of_o danger_n otherwise_o the_o church_n require_v dip_v now_o in_o such_o case_n the_o scripture_n give_v warrant_n for_o such_o a_o alteration_n both_o by_o example_n and_o precept_n tell_v we_o god_n will_v have_v mercy_n and_o not_o sacrifice_v now_o hence_o to_o argue_v for_o a_o change_n in_o the_o institution_n of_o christ_n when_o no_o such_o necessity_n in_o the_o church_n can_v be_v allege_v be_v as_o if_o the_o israelite_n shall_v have_v urge_v a_o general_a permission_n for_o eat_v the_o shewbread_n because_o david_n and_o his_o servant_n have_v it_o to_o supply_v their_o necessity_n 2._o say_v he_o do_v we_o not_o think_v ourselves_o oblige_v to_o communicate_v fast_v albeit_o christ_n institute_v the_o sacrament_n after_o supper_n answ_n no_o we_o think_v it_o high_o convenient_a but_o we_o dare_v not_o charge_v he_o with_o sin_n that_o do_v it_o otherwise_o 2._o the_o time_n be_v evident_o a_o circumstantial_a not_o command_v or_o institute_v by_o christ_n depend_v upon_o the_o passeover_n and_o therefore_o very_o unfit_a to_o be_v parallel_v with_o this_o deprivation_n of_o the_o cup._n 3._o he_o add_v do_v they_o not_o without_o scruple_n eat_v black-pudding_n non_fw-fr obstant●_n the_o apostle_n give_v commandment_n to_o the_o contrary_a answ_n some_o who_o think_v the_o precept_n not_o temporary_a scruple_n yea_o refuse_v the_o eat_n of_o they_o and_o to_o such_o this_o instance_n must_v be_v impertinent_a other_o that_o eat_v they_o do_v it_o upon_o this_o account_n because_o they_o suppose_v they_o have_v good_a reason_n to_o conclude_v the_o precept_n temporary_a and_o make_v only_o to_o avoid_v the_o scandal_n which_o it_o give_v unto_o the_o jew_n and_o see_v this_o can_v with_o any_o reason_n be_v suppose_v of_o christ_n precept_n the_o instance_n must_v be_v impertinent_a to_o they_o also_o yea_o we_o have_v many_o text_n of_o scripture_n which_o seem_v to_o give_v we_o this_o liberty_n of_o eat_v any_o such_o thing_n but_o there_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n which_o in_o the_o least_o manner_n intimate_v the_o lawfulness_n of_o withdraw_a the_o cup_n from_o layick_n to_o p._n 453._o l._n 14._o add_v only_o whereas_o he_o say_v that_o sure_o prudence_n and_o a_o most_o necessary_a care_n of_o our_o own_o salvation_n by_o continue_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n will_v dictate_v to_o we_o that_o see_v the_o church_n be_v infallible_a as_o to_o fundamental_o and_o therefore_o can_v mislead_v we_o to_o our_o danger_n there_o can_v be_v no_o safety_n but_o in_o assent_v to_o all_o her_o decision_n as_o if_o they_o be_v of_o necessary_a faith_n for_o only_o by_o do_v so_o we_o can_v be_v sure_a not_o to_o err_v in_o necessary_a point_n and_o we_o shall_v be_v certain_o free_a from_o all_o danger_n of_o schism_n p._n 266._o and_o by_o this_o mean_n say_v you_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v continue_v in_o unity_n and_o by_o assent_v to_o all_o decision_n her_o member_n be_v sure_a never_o to_o dissent_v from_o those_o that_o be_v necessary_a whereas_o protestant_n by_o take_v a_o liberty_n of_o discern_v betwixt_o fundamental_o and_o nonfundamentals_a at_o least_o wherein_o they_o think_v the_o church_n catholic_n may_v be_v fallible_a be_v beside_o a_o certainty_n of_o dis-union_n expose_v to_o error_n even_o in_o fundamental_o i_o answer_v this_o whole_a discourse_n to_o omit_v divers_a other_o answer_v very_o obvious_a depend_v upon_o two_o supposition_n unanimous_o explode_v by_o we_o 1._o that_o the_o church_n which_o we_o hold_v to_o be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_o be_v the_o roman_a church_n or_o at_o least_o a_o general_n council_n whereas_o when_o we_o assert_v the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_o we_o do_v not_o intend_v to_o assert_v that_o any_o one_o society_n of_o man_n be_v so_o but_o only_o thus_o that_o while_o the_o world_n last_v there_o shall_v be_v some_o man_n in_o the_o world_n which_o err_v not_o in_o fundamental_o chill_n p._n 105._o or_o that_o religion_n shall_v never_o be_v so_o far_o drive_v out_o of_o the_o world_n but_o that_o it_o shall_v always_o have_v somewhere_o or_o other_o some_o that_o believe_v and_o profess_v it_o in_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n thus_o therefore_o you_o argue_v protestant_n acknowledge_v that_o some_o christian_n shall_v be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_o albeit_o they_o be_v neither_o the_o roman_a church_n nor_o a_o general_n council_n nor_o any_o other_o visible_a society_n therefore_o they_o ought_v in_o prudence_n to_o submit_v to_o the_o decision_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o a_o
socinian_o because_o it_o make_v reason_n the_o judge_n as_o the_o romanist_n will_v fain_o persuade_v we_o but_o because_o it_o make_v it_o the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o believe_v nothing_o for_o a_o truth_n but_o what_o we_o can_v comprehend_v as_o to_o the_o manner_n of_o its_o existence_n that_o it_o be_v whereas_o nothing_o be_v more_o evident_a then_o that_o we_o may_v be_v certain_a of_o the_o be_v of_o a_o thing_n when_o we_o understand_v not_o the_o manner_n of_o its_o be_v though_o i_o have_v be_v already_o too_o tedious_a in_o this_o instance_n yet_o because_o i_o have_v rather_o offend_v by_o tediousness_n or_o any_o thing_n rather_o than_o disingenuity_n i_o must_v venture_v a_o very_a short_a digression_n to_o avoid_v deal_v disingenuous_o with_o the_o socinian_o when_o then_o i_o charge_v this_o principle_n upon_o they_o i_o have_v it_o rather_o from_o their_o adversary_n then_o from_o themselves_o for_o i_o must_v profess_v i_o can_v never_o meet_v with_o it_o express_o assert_v in_o their_o own_o writing_n they_o will_v not_o avow_v that_o they_o reject_v manifest_o reveal_v truth_n because_o they_o seem_v contradict_v of_o we_o but_o on_o the_o contrary_a that_o they_o believe_v not_o contradiction_n because_o not_o manifest_o reveal_v and_o so_o they_o pretend_v to_o explode_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o trinity_n not_o in_o the_o first_o place_n because_o it_o seem_v a_o contradiction_n but_o because_o they_o conceive_v it_o not_o to_o be_v clear_o discover_v in_o scripture_n and_o then_o after_o this_o they_o urge_v against_o it_o its_o repugnancy_n to_o the_o principle_n and_o common_a notion_n of_o reason_n and_o so_o their_o principle_n run_v thus_o that_o which_o be_v not_o clear_o reveal_v in_o scripture_n and_o be_v contradictory_n to_o reason_n be_v not_o to_o be_v believe_v and_o if_o there_o be_v as_o much_o truth_n in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o their_o maxim_n as_o there_o be_v in_o the_o last_o there_o will_v be_v one_o more_o socinian_n in_o the_o world_n then_o now_o there_o be_v i_o have_v stay_v the_o long_a upon_o this_o particular_a because_o as_o its_o a_o irrefragable_a evidence_n of_o reason_n sovereignty_n so_o be_v it_o a_o full_a answer_n to_o the_o objection_n against_o it_o for_o whereas_o they_o object_v that_o we_o must_v captivate_v and_o submit_v our_o reason_n to_o faith_n how_o then_o can_v we_o make_v they_o judge_n of_o our_o faith_n from_o the_o the_o precede_a instance_n we_o reply_v that_o we_o even_o then_o place_n reason_n on_o the_o bench_n when_o we_o seem_v to_o dethrone_v it_o and_o at_o the_o same_o time_n make_v it_o a_o umpire_n when_o we_o make_v it_o a_o captive_n but_o in_o the_o last_o place_n to_o come_v near_o our_o present_a purpose_n and_o to_o show_v that_o the_o romanist_n as_o well_o as_o we_o do_v at_o last_o appeal_n to_o their_o private_a reason_n if_o my_o enquiry_n be_v whether_o the_o roman_a church_n or_o the_o reform_a church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n here_o neither_o the_o romish_a church_n nor_o we_o must_v be_v judge_n see_v they_o both_o pretend_v to_o it_o and_o both_o be_v the_o pure_a to_o themselves_o how_o then_o shall_v i_o know_v which_o be_v real_o so_o only_o by_o examine_v both_o their_o plea_n and_o then_o that_o which_o i_o judge_v to_o be_v pure_a do_v i_o adhere_v to_o when_o mr._n cressy_n renounce_v the_o protestant_a communion_n to_o join_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n he_o either_o do_v it_o upon_o motive_n of_o reason_n or_o not_o if_o not_o it_o be_v a_o brutish_a unreasonable_a act_n but_o if_o he_o do_v then_o do_v he_o enter_v into_o the_o roman_a communion_n because_o his_o own_o reason_n judge_v it_o to_o be_v the_o pure_a church_n and_o when_o he_o believe_v his_o church_n infallible_a he_o either_o have_v reason_n for_o his_o belief_n or_o he_o have_v not_o if_o he_o have_v not_o then_o again_o be_v his_o belief_n irrational_a uncertain_a and_o absurd_a if_o he_o have_v than_o he_o believe_v his_o church_n infallible_a because_o his_o reason_n judge_v it_o to_o be_v so_o and_o so_o the_o church_n be_v behold_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o his_o private_a reason_n for_o his_o belief_n of_o her_o infallibility_n and_o have_v not_o mr._n c._n give_v we_o his_o reason_n such_o as_o they_o be_v why_o he_o judge_v and_o believe_v the_o church_n infallible_a to_o what_o purpose_n if_o reason_n be_v so_o unfit_a a_o judge_n and_o let_v he_o do_v what_o violence_n he_o can_v to_o his_o rational_a faculty_n unless_o he_o become_v a_o mere_a brute_n his_o own_o private_a reason_n will_v rule_v he_o and_o in_o spite_n of_o pope_n or_o council_n keep_v the_o chair_n and_o i_o dare_v challenge_v all_o the_o romanist_n in_o the_o world_n to_o demonstrate_v that_o unless_o every_o man_n reason_n be_v his_o guide_n he_o must_v follow_v chance_n and_o uncertainty_n before_o i_o pass_v hence_o to_o avoid_v captious_a mistake_n be_v please_v to_o note_v that_o when_o i_o make_v every_o man_n reason_n his_o guide_n i_o do_v not_o exclude_v the_o guidance_n of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n but_o rather_o imply_v it_o because_o that_o do_v not_o move_v we_o by_o irrational_a and_o violent_a impulse_n but_o by_o discover_v to_o our_o reason_n a_o full_a evidence_n or_o far_a connexion_n of_o truth_n then_o without_o its_o illumination_n we_o can_v have_v discern_v and_o so_o force_v our_o assent_n by_o a_o strong_a conviction_n of_o our_o reason_n which_o be_v the_o criterion_n whereby_o we_o difference_n the_o impression_n of_o the_o divine_a spirit_n from_o delusory_a and_o false_a inspiration_n in_o that_o these_o black_a vapour_n darken_v and_o blast_v our_o reason_n and_o act_v we_o by_o illiterate_a and_o brutish_a phantasm_n whilst_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n clarify_v our_o understanding_n and_o lead_v we_o by_o the_o rule_n of_o reason_n and_o sobriety_n and_o therefore_o our_o enthusiastical_a sectary_n be_v in_o part_n romish_a proselyte_n for_o their_o folly_n be_v the_o same_o though_o not_o in_o the_o same_o instance_n viz._n of_o quit_v the_o sure_a conduct_n of_o their_o reason_n to_o entrust_v themselves_o to_o more_o uncertain_a guide_n and_o such_o as_o they_o can_v know_v unless_o from_o their_o reason_n which_o they_o dare_v not_o trust_v but_o may_v be_v mere_a delusion_n and_o imposture_n now_o the_o only_a exception_n sect._n 5_o which_o mr._n c._n follow_v his_o predecessor_n urge_v against_o this_o supreme_a authority_n of_o reason_n be_v that_o its_o fallible_a and_o so_o may_v deceive_v and_o misguide_v we_o but_o 1._o if_o this_o impeachment_n be_v valid_a then_o let_v we_o renounce_v our_o reason_n and_o with_o one_o consent_n turn_v sceptic_n how_o shall_v i_o be_v assure_v that_o twice_o two_o make_v four_o that_o the_o whole_a be_v more_o than_o a_o part_n that_o the_o same_o thing_n can_v at_o the_o same_o time_n exist_v and_o not_o exist_v i_o must_v not_o trust_v the_o judgement_n of_o my_o reason_n for_o that_o may_v deceive_v say_v mr._n cressey_n what_o then_o must_v i_o confide_v in_o must_v i_o appeal_v to_o a_o general_n council_n whether_o two_o and_o two_o make_v four_o 2._o can_v you_o bring_v i_o to_o a_o sure_a guide_n than_o reason_n yes_o you_o will_v answer_v to_o the_o church_n but_o if_o my_o reason_n be_v fallible_a may_v misguide_v i_o why_o may_v it_o not_o when_o it_o conduct_n i_o to_o the_o church_n especial_o when_o yourselves_o profess_v to_o believe_v the_o church_n infallibility_n upon_o prudential_a motive_n if_o i_o may_v not_o trust_v my_o reason_n why_o shall_v i_o trust_v it_o here_o again_o if_o my_o confidence_n in_o the_o church_n infallibility_n be_v build_v upon_o my_o reason_n and_o i_o have_v no_o certainty_n of_o it_o but_o from_o my_o reason_n then_o can_v i_o have_v more_o assurance_n in_o the_o church_n guidance_n then_o in_o the_o conduct_n of_o my_o reason_n for_o the_o superstructure_n can_v be_v strong_a than_o the_o foundation_n if_o then_o my_o reason_n be_v too_o weak_a to_o trust_v to_o much_o more_o that_o which_o be_v build_v upon_o it_o 3._o what_o be_v your_o meaning_n when_o you_o object_n that_o reason_n be_v fallible_a be_v it_o this_o that_o its_o possible_a we_o may_v be_v deceive_v by_o it_o but_o then_o 1._o be_v it_o not_o possible_a the_o church_n may_v deceive_v we_o too_o 2._o as_o long_o as_o we_o follow_v reason_n true_a rule_n its_o impossible_a to_o err_v because_o they_o be_v certain_a and_o infallible_o true_a but_o if_o man_n will_v abuse_v their_o reason_n and_o bend_v they_o to_o their_o interest_n they_o may_v so_o and_o so_o they_o may_v the_o church_n authority_n and_o may_v not_o the_o church_n abuse_v her_o authority_n will_v christ_n violent_o force_v she_o into_o truth_n give_v we_o a_o guide_n that_o can_v be_v abuse_v by_o wicked_a and_o unreasonable_a man_n